" ■• * ' A^ *% " « " ^^Lo^* cS- ■i^" *'. * O x ^ "^ ^v O N O ' <^^ V .0' ■^. •' fi> o_ * 4 o ?.^ ^^ ^^ BACON'S HISTORY OF THE REIGN OF KING HENRY VIL SonDon: C. J. CLAY and SONS, CAMBRIDGE UNIVERSITY PRESS WAREHOUSE, ■ AVE MARIA LANE. iglasgoto: 50, WELLINGTON STREET. 3L«tpjig: F. A. BROCKHAUS. i^eia lork: THE MACMILLAN COMPANY. [>/// Rights reserved^ IPitt |P«ss Ssrifs. BACON'S HISTORY OF THE REIGN OF KING HENRY VII WITH NOTES BY THE LATE REV. J. RAWSON LUMBY, D.D. LADY MARGARET PROFESSOR OF DIVINITY. STEREOTYPED EDITION. CAMBRIDGE: AT THE UNIVERSITY PRESS. 1902 ^11^ First Edition 1876. Repfinted 1880 {twice), 1S81 {tzvice), 1885, 1888, 1889. Revised Edition 1892. Reprinted 1902. • \ V PREFACE. A new edition of this book being required advantage has been taken of the opportunity to revise and correct some of the notes. A few additional notes which appeared to be needful have been appended. In addition to this the dates to which the principal matters of the text refer have been inserted on each page, and instead of the Index of Proper Names, a complete Index, both for text and notes, has been supplied. These changes, suggested by experience, will, it is thought, add con- siderably to the usefulness of the volume. J. R. L. June, r892. CONTENTS. PAGES Introduction v — xvi Chronological Table xvii— xx Text i— 221 Notes 223—302 Glossary • 303—313 General Index . . . ' . . . . 315—344 INTRODUCTION. I. Of the Author. Francis Bacon, afterwards Baron Verulam and Viscount St Albans, was born 22nd Jan., 1560 — i, at York House, in the Strand. His father was Sir Nicholas Bacon, Queen Elizabeth's Lord Keeper, and his mother, who was the second wife of Sir Nicholas, was Anne, daughter of Sir Anthony Cooke. She was a lady of considerable learning, as was shewn by her translation of Jewel's Apology from Latin into English. Bacon's youth was passed partly in London, and partly at the country residence of the family at Gorham- bury near St Albans. At twelve years old he became a member of Trinity College, Cambridge, and continued his studies in that University until his sixteenth year. The father designed his son for diplomatic life, and therefore after entering him of Gray's Inn, sent him to France as one of the suite of Sir Amyas Paulet, who went to Paris as English ambassador in September, 1576. But after little more than two years of such life, the prospects of young Bacon became utterly changed by the sudden death of his father in February, 1578 — 9. By this event Bacon was compelled to return to London, and settled down at Gray's Inn to the study of the law as the profession by which he was to live, his father's death having occurred before it had been possible for him to make provision for the children of his second marriage. Bacon was admitted to the bar in 1582, but strove, along with his legal occupations, to carry on those studies in which his soul delighted, and con- B. H. b vi INTRODUCTION. ceived at this early time the plan of his great work, and began to put some contributions towards it into form, to the first of which he gave the ambitious title of " Teinporis Partus Maxi- musP Two years later he became a member of Parliament, his first constituency being Melcombe Regis in Dorsetshire, and his parliamentary duties for various boroughs (Taunton, Liverpool, Middlesex, Ipswich, St Albans, &c.) continued with- out a break for more than thirty years. In 1589 the gift of the reversion of the sinecure office of Clerk of the Council in the Star Chamber seemed t3 promise an income which would relieve him from the necessity of following the law as his career, but the office did not become vacant for nearly twenty years, and thus the world was deprived in great part of those services to philosophic research which unbroken leisure would have enabled Bacon to render. Endeavours were made, between 1594 and 1596, to obtain for him one of the offices of Attorney- General, Solicitor-General, or Master of the Rolls, which were all vacant during those two years, but the reign of Ehzabeth came to an end before such fortune fell to Bacon's lot. It was in January, 1597, that he published the first edition of his Essays, the first of those works by which his name became famous in the list of English men of letters. This edition comprised only ten essays, nor were the essays in- creased to their present number or brought into their present form till the third edition in 1625. These short compositions are masterpieces both of thought and expression ; every sen- tence is replete with ideas enough for a sermon, and each expression is as polished as if the author had designed it to become a maxim. In 1605 appeared, in EngHsh, his two books, " Of the Proficietice and Advauncement of Learning.^^ They were dedicated to King James, and form the basis of what was afterwards expanded into the nine books (in Latin), "Z?ance. But well she knew, that whatsoever .should come from her, would be held suspected. And therefore, if he should go oiit of Flanders immediately into Ireland, 15 ^'^c might be thought to have some hand in it. 'And be- sides, the time was not yet ripe ; for that the two Kings were then upon terms of peace. Therefore she wheeled about ; and to put all suspicion afar off", and loth to keep him any longer by her, for that she knew secrets are not -o long-lived, she sent him unknown into Portugal, with the lady Brampton^ an English lady, that embarked for Por- tugal at that time ; with some privado of her own, to have an eye upon him, and there he was to remain, and to expect her farther directions. In the mean time she 25 omitted not to prepare things for his better welcome and accepting, not only in the kingdom of Ireland, but in the court of France. He continued in Portugal about a year ; and by that time the King of England called his parliament, as hath been said, and declared open war against France. 30 Now did the sign reign, and the constellation was come, under which Perkin should appear. And therefore he was straight sent unto by the duchess to go for Ireland, ac- cording to the first designment. In Ireland he did arrive 1492] HISTORY OF KIXG HENRY VII. 109 at the town of Cork. When he was thither come, his own tale was, when he made his confession afterwards, that the Irishmen, finding him in some good clothes, came flocking about him, and bare him down that he was the duke of Clarence that had been there before. And after, that he 5 was Richard the third's base son. And lastly, that he was Richard duke of York, second son to Edward the fourth. But that he, for his part, renounced all these things, and offered to swear upon the holy Evangelists, that he was no such man; till at last they forced it upon him, and 10 bade him fear nothing, and so forth. But the truth is, that immediately upon his coming into Ireland, he took uj)on him the said person of the duke of York, and drew unto him complices and partakers by all the means he could devise. Insomuch as he wrote his letters unto the earls of 15 Desmond and Kildare, to come in to his aid, and be of his party ; the originals of which letters are yet extant. Somewhat before this time, the duchess had also gained unto her a near servant of King Henry's own, one Stephen Frion, his secretary for the French tongue ; an active man, 20 but turbulent and discontented. This Frion had fled over to Charles the French King, and put himself into his ser- vice, at such time as he began to be in open enmity with the King. Now King Charles, when he understood of the person and attempts of Perkin, ready of himself to embrace 25 all advantages against the King of England, instigated by Frion, and formerly prepared by the lady Margaret, forth- with despatched one Lucas and this Frion, in the nature of ambassadors, to Perkin, to advertise him of the King's good inclination to him, and that he was resolved to aid him to 30 recover his right against King Henry, an usurper of England, and an enemy of France ; and wished him to come over unto him at Paris. Perkin thought himself in heasen now iro ///STOAT OF K/NG HENRY VI/. [1492 that he was invited by so great a King in so honourable a manner. And imparting unto his friends in Ireland for their encouragement, how fortune called him, and what great hopes he had, sailed presently into France. When he was 5 come to the court of France, the King received him with great honour ; saluted, and styled him by the name of the duke of York ; lodged him, and accommodated him in great state. And the better to give him the representation and the countenance of a Prince, assigned him a guard for his lo ])crson, whereof the lord Congresall was captain. The cour- tiers likewise, though it be ill mocking with the French, applied themselves to their King's bent, seeing there was reason of state for it. At the same time there repaired unto Perkin divers Englishmen of quality ; Sir George Nevile, 15 Sir John Taylor, and about one hundred more; and amongst the rest, this Stephen Frion, of whom we spake, who fol- lowed his lortune both then and for a long time after, and was indeed his principal counsellor and instrument in all his proceedings. But all this on the French King's part was 30 but a trick, the better to bow King Henry to peace. And therefore, upon the first grain of incense, that was sacrificed upon the altar of peace at Boulogne, Perkin was smoked away. Yet would not the French King deliver him up to King Henry, as he was laboured to do, for his honour's 25 sake, but warned him away, and dismissed him. And Perkin on his part was as ready to be gone, doubting he might be caught up under-hand. He therefore took his way into Flanders, unto the duchess of Burgundy; pretending that having been variously tossed by fortune, he directed his 30 course thither as to a safe harbour: no ways taking know- ledge that he had ever been there before, but as if that had been his first address. The duchess, on the other part, made it as new and strange to see him ; pretending, at the 1492] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI I. iii first, that she was taught and made wise by the example of Lambert Simnel, how she did admit of any counterfeit stuff; though even in that, she said, she was not fully satisfied. She pretended at the first, and that was ever in the presence of others, to pose him and sift him, thereby to try whether 5 he were indeed the very duke of York or no. But seeming to receive full satisfaction by his answers, she then feigned herself to be transported with a kind of astonishment, mixt of joy and wonder, at his miraculous deliverance; receiving him as if he were risen from death to life : and inferring, 10 tliat God, who had in such wonderful manner preserved him from death, did likewise reserve him for some great and prosperous fortune. As for his dismission out of France, th^y interpreted it not, as if he were detected or neglected for a counterfeit deceiver ; but contrariwise that it 1 5 did shew manifestly unto the world, that he was some great matter; for that it was his abandoning that, in effect, made the peace ; being no more but the sacrificing of a poor dis- tressed Prince, unto the utility and ambition of two mighty monarchs. Neither was Perkin, for his part, wanting to 20 liimself, either in gracious or princely behaviour, or in ready and apposite answers, or in contenting and caressing those that did apyjly themselves unto him, or in pretty scorn and disdain to those that seemed to doubt of him ; but in all things did notably acquit himself; insomuch as it was gene- 25 rally believed, as well amongst great persons, as amongst the vulgar, that he was indeed duke Richard. Nay, himself, with long and continual counterfeiting, and with oft telling a lie, was turned by habit almost into the thing he seemed to be; and from a liar to a believer. The duchess therefore, 30 as in a case out of doubt, did him all princely honour, calling him always by the name of her nephew, and giving him the delicate title of the white rose of England ; and 112 HlSrORY OF KING HENRY VIJ. [1492 appointed him a guard of thirty persons, halberdiers, clad in a party-coloured livery of murrey and blue, to attend his person. Her court likewise, and generally the Dutch and strangers, in their usage towards him, expressed no less 5 respect. The news hereof came blazing and thundering over into England, that the duke of York was sure aHve. As for the name of Perkin \V^arbeck, it was not at that time come to light, but all the news ran upon the duke of York; that he lo had been entertained in Ireland, bought and sold in France, and was now plainly avowed, and in great honour in Flan- ders. These fames took hold of divers; in some upon dis- content; in some upon ambition; in some upon levity and desire of change ; in some few upon conscience, and belief I r but in most upon simplicity ; ami in divers, out of depend- ence upon some of the better sort, who did in secret favour and nourish these bruits. And it was not long ere these rumours of novelty had begotten others of scandal and murmur against the King and his government ; taxing him 2o for a great tax-er of his people, and discountenancer of his nobility. The loss of Britain, and the peace with France, were not forgotten. But chiefly they fell upon the wrong that he did his Queen, in that he did not reign in her right. Wherefore they said, that God had now brought to Hght a 25 masculine branch of the house of York, tliat would not be at his courtesy, howsoever he did depress his poor lady. And yet, as it fareth in the things which are current with the multitude, and which they affect, these fames grew so general, as the authors were lost in the generality of speakers. 30 They being like running weeds, that have no certain root ; or like footings up and down, impossible to be traced : but after a while these ill humours drew to an head, and settled secretlv in some eminent i)ersons ; which were Sir Willianl 1492] irrSTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 113 Stanley lord cliamberlain of the King's household, the lord Fitzwalter, Sir Simon Mountfort, and Sir Thomas Thwaites. These entered into a secret conspiracy to flivour duke Richard's title. Nevertheless none engaged their fortunes in this business openly, but two; Sir Robert Clifford, and 5 master WilHam Barley, who sailed over into Flanders, sent indeed from the party of the conspirators here, to understand the truth of those things that passed there, and not without some help of moneys from hence ; provisionally to be deli- vered, if they found and were satisfied, that there was truth 10 in these pretences. The person of Sir Robert Clifford, being a gentleman of f.ime and family, was extremely wel- come to the lady Margaret. Who after she had conference with him, brought him to the sight of Perkin, with whom he had often speech and discourse. So that in the end, won 15 cither by the duchess to affect, or by Perkin to believe, he wrote back into England, that he knew the person of Richard duke of York, as well as he knew his own ; and that this young man was undoubtedly he. By this means all things grew prepared to revolt and sedition here, and the con- 20 spiracy came to have a correspondence between Flanders and England. The King on his [)art was not asleep ; but to arm or levy forces yet, he thought would but shew fear, and do this idol too much worship. Nevertheless the ports he did shut up, 25 or at least kept a watch on them, that none should pass to or fro that was suspected : but for the rest, he chose to work by countermine. His purposes were two; the one to lay open the abuse; the other, to break the knot of the conspi- rators. To detect the abuse, there were but two ways ; the 30 first, to make it manifest to the world that the duke of York was indeed murdered ; the other, to prove that were he dead or alive, yet Perkin was a counterfeit. For the first, L. H. 8 114 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. [1492 thus it stood. There were but four persons that could speak upon knowledge to the murder of the duke of York ; Sir James Tirrel, the employed man from King Richard, John Dighton and Miles Forrest his servants, the two butchers or 5 tormentors, and the priest of the tower that buried them. Of which four, Miles Forrest and the priest were dead, and there remained alive only Sir James Tirrel and John Dighton. These two the King caused to be committed to the Tower, and examined touching the manner of the death lo of the two innocent princes. They agreed both in a tale, as the King gave out to this effect : That King Richard having directed his warrant for the putting of them to death, to • Brackenbury the lieutenant of the Tower, was by him re- fused. Whereupon the King directed his warrant to Sir 15 James Tirrel, to receive the keys of the Tower from the lieu- tenant, for the space of a night, for the King's special service. That Sir James Tirrel accordingly repaired to the Tower by night, attended by his two servants aforenamed, whom he had chosen for that purpose. That himself stood 20 at the stair foot, and sent these two villains to execute the murder. That they smothered them in their bed ; and, that done, called up their master to see their naked dead bodies, which they had laid forth. That they were buried under the stairs, and some stones cast upon them. That when the re- 25 port was made to King Richard, that his will was done, he gave Sir James Tirrel great thanks, but took exception to the place of their burial, being too base for them that were King's children. Whereupon, another night, by the King's warrant renewed, their bodies were removed by the priest of 30 the Tower, and buried by him in some place, which, by means of the priest's death soon after, could not be known. Thus much was then delivered abroad, to be the effect of those examinations : but the King, nevertheless, made no 1492] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 115 use of them in any of his declarations ; whereby, as it seems, those examinations left the business somewhat perplexed. And as for Sir James Tirrel, he was soon after beheaded in the Tower-yard for other matters of treason. But John Dighton, who, it seemeth, spake best for the King, was forth- 5 with set at liberty, and was the principal means of divulging this tradition. Therefore this kind of proof being left so naked, the King used the more diligence in the latter, for the tracing of Perkin, To th^s purpose he sent abroad into several parts, and especially into Flanders, divers secret and 10 nimble scouts and spies, some feigning themselves to fly over unto Perkin, and to adhere unto him ; and some under other pretences, to learn, search, and discover all the circum- stances and particulars of Perkin's parents, birth, person, travels up and down; and in brief, to have a journal, as it 15 were, of his life and doings. He furnished these his em- ployed men liberally with money, to draw on and reward intelligences ; giving them also in charge, to advertise con- tinually what they found, and nevertheless still to go on. And ever as one advertisement and discovery called up 20 another, he employed other new men, where the business did require it. Others he employed in a more special na- ture and trust, to be his pioneers in the main countermine. These were directed to insinuate themselves into the fami- liarity and confidence of the principal persons of the party 25 in Flanders, and so to learn what associates they had, and correspondents, either here in England, or abroad; and how far every one engaged, and what new ones they meant after- wards to try or board. And as this for the persons, so for the actions themselves, to discover to the bottom, as they 30 could, the utmost of Perkin's and the conspirators, their intentions, hopes, and practices. These latter best-be-trust spies had some of them farther instructions, to practise 8—2 ii6 nrSTORY OF KING HENRY VII. [1493 and draw off the best friends and servants of Perkin, by- making remonstrance to them, how weakly his enterprise and hopes were built, and with how prudent and potent a King they had to deal ; and to reconcile them to the King, 5 with promise of pardon and good conditions of reward. And, above the rest, to assail, sap, and work into the con- stancy of Sir Robert Clifford; and to win him, if they could, being the man that knew most of their secrets, and who being won away, would most appal and discourage the rest, 10 and in a manner break the knot. There is a strange tradition ; that the King, being lost in a wood of suspicions, and not knowing whom to trust, had both intelligence with the confessors and chaplains of divers great men; and for the better credit of his espials 15 abroad with the contrary side, did use to have them cursed at Paul's, by name, amongst the bead-roll of the King's ene- mies, according to the custom of those times. These espials plied their charge so roundly, as the King had" an anatomy of Perkin alive; and was likewise well informed of the par- 20 ticular correspondent conspirators in England, and many other mysteries were revealed ; and Sir Robert Clifford in especial won to be assured to the King, and industrious and officious for his service. The King therefore, receiving a rich return of his diligence, and great satisfaction touching a 25 number of particulars, first divulged and spread abroad the imposture and juggling of Perkin's person and travels, with the circumstances thereof, throughout the realm : not by proclamation, because things were yet in examination, and so might receive the more or the less, but by court-fames, 30 which commonly print better than printed proclamations. Then thought he it also time to send an ambass^ge unto archduke Philip into Flanders, for the abandoning and dismissing of Perkin. Herein he employed Sir Edward 1493] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 117 Poynings, and Sir William Warham doctor of the canon law. The archduke was then young, and governed by his council : before whom the ambassadors had audience: and doctor Warham spake in this manner : "MY lords, the King our master is very sorry, that 5 " England and your country here of Flanders, having been "counted as man and wife for so long time; now this coun- " try of all others should be the stage, where a base counter- "feit should play the part of a King of England; not only "to his grace's disquiet and dishonour, but to the scorn and 10 " reproach of all sovereign Princes. To counterfeit the dead "image of a King in his coin, is an high offence by all laws; '' but to counterfeit the living image of a King in his i)erson, " exceedeth all falsifications, except it should be that of a " Mahomet, or an Antichrist, that counterfeit divine honour. 15 " The King hath too great an opinion of this sage council, " to think that any of you is caught with this fable, though " way may be given by you to the passion of some, the thing " in itself is so improbable. To set testimonies aside of the " death of duke Richard, which the King hath upon record, 20 " plain and infallible, because they may be thought to be in " the King's own power, let the thing testify for itself Sense "and reason no power can command. Is it possible, trow " you, that King Richard should damn his soul, and foul his "name with so abominable a murder, and yet not mend his 25 " case ? Or do you think, that men of blood, that were his " instruments, did turn to pity in the midst of their execu- "tion? Whereas in ciuel and savage beasts, and men also, "the first draught of blood doth yet make them more fierce " and enraged. Do you not know, that the bloody execu- t,^ " tioners of tyrants do go to such errands with an halter "about their neck; so that if they perform not, they are sure "to die for it? And do von think that these men would ii8 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. [1493 '■'■■ hazard their own hves, for sparing another's ? Admit they " should have saved him ; what should they have done with '' him ? Turn him into London streets, that the watchmen, " or any passenger that should light upon him, might carry 5 " him before a justice, and so all come to light ? Or should ''they have kept him by them secretly? That surely would "have required a great deal of care, charge, and continual "fears. But, my lords, I labour too much in a clear busi- "ness. The King is so wise, and hath so good friends ro "abroad, as now he knoweth duke I^erkin from his cradle. " And because he is a great Prince, if you have any good " poet here, he can help him with notes to write his life; and " to parallel him with Lambert Simnel, now the King's fal- " coner. And therefore, to speak plainly to your lordships, , r " it is the strangest thing in the world, that the lady Mar- " garet, excuse us if we name her, whose malice to the King " is both causeless and endless, should now when she is old, "at the time when other women give over child-bearing, " bring forth two such monsters ; being not the births of 2o"uine or ten months, but of many years. And whereas " other natural mothers bring forth children weak, and not " able to help themselves ; she bringeth forth tall striplings, " able soon after their coming into the world to bid battle " to mighty Kings. IMy lords, we stay unwillingly upon this 2C "part. We would to God, that lady would once taste the "joys which God Almighty doth serve up unto her, in " beholding her niece to reign in such honour, and with so " much royal issue, which she might be pleased to account " as her own. The King's request unto the archduke, and 30 "your lordships, might be; that according to the example " of King Charles, who hath already discarded him, you " would banish this unworthy fellow out of your dominions. " But because the King may justly expect more from an 1493] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 119 "ancient confederate, than from a new reconciled enemy, "he maketh his request unto you to deUver him up into "his hands: pirates, and impostors of this sort, being fit to " be accounted the common enemies of mankind, and no "ways to be protected by the law of nations." c After some time of deliberation, the ambassadors received this short answer : "THAT the archduke, for the love of King Henry, " would in no sort aid or assist the pretended duke, but in "all things conserve the amity he had with the King: But 10 " for the duchess dowager, she was absolute in the lands " of her dowry, and that he could not let her to dispose of " her own." The King, upon the return of the ambassadors, was nothing satisfied with this answer. For well he knew, that 15 a patrimonial dowry carried no part of sovereignty or command of forces. Besides, the ambassadors told him plainly, that they saw the duchess had a great party in the archduke's council ; and that howsoever it was carried in a course of connivance, yet the archduke underhand gave 20 aid and furtherance to Perkin. Wherefore, partly out of courage, and partly out of policy, the King forthwith banished all Flemings, as well their persons as their wares, out of his kingdom; commanding his subjects likewise, and by name his merchants adventurers, which had a resiance 25 at Antwerp, to return ; translating the mart, wliich com- monly followed the English cloth, unto Calais ; and em- barred also all farther trade for the future. This the King did, being sensible in point of honour, not to suffer a pretender to the crov/n of England to affront him so 30 near at hand, and he to keep terms of friendship with the country where he did set up. But he had also a farther reach : for that he knew well, that the subjects of Flanders I20 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1493 drew so great commodity from the trade of England, as by this embargo they would soon wax weary of Perkin ; and that the tumults of Flanders had been so late and fresh, as it was no time for the Prince to displease the people. Never 5 theless for form's sake, by way of requital, the archduke (lid likewise banish the English out of Flanders ; which in effect was done to his hand. The King being well advertised, that Perkin did more trust upon friends and partakers within the realm than I o upon foreign arms, thought it behoved him to apply the remedy where the disease lay ; and to proceed with severity against some of the principal conspirators here within the realm ; thereby to purge the ill humours in Eng- land, and to cool the hopes in Inlanders. Wherefore 15 he caused to be apprehended, almost at an instant, John Ratclifte, lord Fitzwalter, Sir Simon Mountfort, Sir 'J'homas Thwaites, William Daubeney, Pvobert Ratclifte, Thomas Cressenor, and Thomas Astwood. All these were arraigned, convicted, and condemned for high-treason, in 20 adhering and promising aid to Perkin. Of these the lord Fitzwalter was conveyed to Calais, and there kept in hold, and in hope of life, until soon after, either impatient or betrayed, he dealt with his keeper to have escaped, and tliereupon was beheaded. But Sir Simon Mountfort, Robert 25 Ratclifife, and William Daubeney, were beheaded imme- diately after their condemnation. The rest were pardoned, together with many others, clerks and laics, amongst which were two Dominican friars, and William Worsley dean of Paul's ; which latter sort passed examination, but came not 30 to public trial. The lord chamberlain at that time was not touched ; whether it were that the King would not stir too many humours at once, but, after the manner of good physicians, 1494] HISTORY GF KING HENRY VI I. 121 l)urge the head last ; or that Clifford, from whom most of these discoveries came, reserved that piece for his own coming over ; signifying only to the King in the mean time, that he doubted there were some greater ones in the business, whereof he would give the King farther account 5 when he came to his presence. Upon Allhallows-day even, being now the tenth year of the King's reign, the King's second son Henry was created duke of York ; and as well the duke, as divers others, noblemen, knights-bachelors, and gentlemen of quality, 10 were made knights of the Bath according to the ceremony. Upon the morrow after twelfth-day, the King removed from Westminster, where he had kept his Christmas, to the Tower of London. This he did as soon as he had ad- vertisement that Sir Robert Clifford, in whose bosom or 15 budget most of Perkin's secrets were laid up, was come into England. And the place of the Tower was chosen to that end, that if Clifford should accuse any of the great ones, they might without suspicion, or noise, or sending abroad of warrants, be presently attached ; the court and 20 prison being within the cincture of one wall. After a day or two, the King drew unto him a selected council, and admitted Clifford to his presence ; who first fell down at his feet, and in all humble manner craved the King's l)ardon ; which the King then granted though he were in- 25 deed secretly assured of his life before. Then commanded to tell his knowledge, he did amongst many others, of himself, not interrogated, impeach Sir William Stanley, the lord chamberlain of the King's household. The King seemed to be much amazed at the naming 30 of this lord, as if he had heard the news of some strange and fearful i)rodigy. To hear a man that had done him service of so high a nature, as to save his life, and set the 122 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. [1494 crown upon his head ; a man, that enjoyed, by his favour and advancement, so great a fortune both in honour and riches ; a man, that was tied unto him in so near a band of aUiance, his brother having married the King's mother; 5 and lastly, a man, to whom he had committed the trust of his person, in making him his chamberlain : that this man, no ways disgraced, no ways discontent, no ways put in fear, should be false unto him. Clifford was required to say over again and again the particulars of his accusation ; ro being warned, that in a matter so unlikely, and that con- cerned so great a servant of the King's, he shoukl not in any wise go too far. But the King finding that he did sadly and constantly, without hesitation or varying, antl with those civil protestations that were fit, stand to that ^5 that he had said, offering to justify it upon his soul and life ; he caused him to be removed. And after he had not a little bemoaned himself unto his council there present, gave order that wSir William Stanley should be restrained in his own chamber where he lay before, in the square 2o tower: and the next day he was examined by the lords. Upon his examination he denied little of that wherewith he was charged, nor endeavoured much to excuse or ex- tenuate his fault : so that, not very wisely, thinking to make his oftence less by confession, he made it enough 25 for condemnation. It was conceived, that he trusted much to his former merits, and the interest that his bro- ther had in the King. But those helps were over-weighed by divers things that made against him, and were pre- dominant in the King's nature and mind. First, an over- 30 merit ; for convenient merit, unto which reward may easily reach, doth best with Kings. Next the sense of his power; for the King thought, that he that could set him up, was the more dangerous to pull him down. Thirdly, the 149!] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL 123 glimirering of a confiscation ; for he was the richest sub- ject for value in the kingdom : there being found in his castle of Holt forty thousand marks in ready money and plate, besides jewels, household-stuff, stocks upon his grounds, and other personal estate exceeding great. And 5 for his revenue in land and fee, it was three thousand pounds a year of old rent, a great matter in those times. Lastly, the nature of the time ; for if the King had been out of fear of his own estate, it was not unlike he would have spared his life. But the cloud of so great a rebellion 10 hanging over his head, made him work sure. Wherefore after some six weeks' distance of time, which the King did honourably interpose, both to give space to his brothers intercession, and to shew to the world that he had a con- flict with himself what he should do; he was arraigned of 15 high-treason, and condemned, and presently after beheaded. Yet is it to this day left but in dark memory, both what the case of this noble person was, for which he suffered ; and what likewise was the ground and cause of his defec- tion, and the alienation of his heart from the King. His case 20 was said to be this ; That in discourse between Sir Robert Clifford and him he had said, " That if he were sure that " that young man were King Edward's son, he would never " bear arms against him." This case seems somewhat an hard case, both in respect of the conditional, and in respect 25 of the other words. But for the conditional, it seemeth the judges of that time, who were learned men, and the three chief of them of the privy-council, thought it was a dan- gerous thing to admit ijs and andsy to (jualify words of treason ; whereby every man might express his malice, 30 and blanch his danger. And it was like to the case, in the following times, of Elizabeth Barton, the holy maid of Kent ; who had said, " That if King Henry the eighth did 124 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. [149| " not take Catharine his wife again, he should be deprived " of his crown, and die the death of a dog." And infinite cases may be put of hke nature; which, it seemeth, the grave judges taking into consideration, would not admit of 5 treasons upon condition. And as for the positive words, " That he would not bear arms against King Edward's "son;" though the words seem calm, yet it was a plain and direct over-ruling of the King's title, either by the line of Lancaster, or by act of parliament : which, no doubt, lo pierced the King more, than if Stanley had charged his lance upon him in the field. For if Stanley would hold that opinion, that a son of King Edward had still the better right, he being so principal a person of authority and favour about the King, it was to teach all England to 15 say as much. And therefore, as those times were, that speech touched the quick. But some writers do put this out of doubt ; for they say that Stanley did expressly pro- mise to aid Perkin, and sent him some help of treasure. Now for the motive of his falling ofY from the King; 20 it is true, that at Bosworth-field the King was beset, and in a manner inclosed round about by the troops of King Richard, and in manifest danger of his hfe; when this Stanley was sent by his brother, with three thousand men to his rescue, which he performed so, that King Richard 25 was slain upon the place. So as the condition of mortal men is not capable of a greater benefit, than the King received by the hands of Stanley; being like the benefit of Christ, at once to save and crown. For which service the King gave him great gifts, made him his counsellor 30 and chamberlain ; and, somewhat contrary to his nature, had winked at the great spoils of Bosworth-field, which came almost wholly to this man's hands, to his infinite enriching. Yet nevertheless, blown up with the conceit of his merit. 149|J HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI I. 125 he did not think he had received good measure from the King, at least not pressing down and running over, as he expected. And his ambition was so exorbitant and un- bounded, as he became suitor to the King for the earldom of Chester : which ever being a kind of appendage to the 5 principality of Wales, and using to go to the King's son, his suit did not only end in a denial, but in a distaste : the King i)erceiving thereby, that his desires were intem- perate, and his cogitations vast and irregular, and that his former benefits were but cheap, and lightly regarded by him. 10 Wherefore the King began not to brook him well. And as a little leaven of new distaste doth commonly sour the whole lump of former merits, the King's wit began now to sug- gest unto his passion, that Stanley at Bosworth-field, though he came time enough to save his life, yet he stayed long 15 enough to endanger it. But yet having no matter against him, he continued him in his places until this his fall. After him was made lord chamberlain Giles lord Dau- beney, a man of great sufficiency and valour ; the more because he was gentle and moderate. 20 There was a common opinion, that Sir Robert Clifford, who now was become the state informer, was from the beginning an emissary and spy of the King's ; and that he fled over into Flanders with his consent and privity. But this is not probable ; both because he never recovered that 25 degree of grace, which he had with the King before his going over; and chiefly, for that the discovery which he had made touching the lord chamberlain, which was his great service, grew not from anything he learned abroad, for that he knew it well before he went. 30 These executions, and especially that of the lord chamberlain, which was the chief strength of the party, and by means of Sir Robert Clifford, who was the most 126 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI I. [149| inward man of trust amongst them, did extremely quail the design of Perkin and his complices, as well through discouragement as distrust. So that they were now, like sand without lime, ill bound together; especially as many 5 as were English, who were at a gaze, looking strange one upon another, not knowing who was faithful to their side; but thinking, that the King, what with his baits, and what with his nets, would draw them all unto him that were any thing worth. And indeed it came to pass, that divers came lo away by the thread, sometimes one, and sometimes another. Barley, that was joint commissioner with Clifford, did hold out one of the longest, till Perkin was far worn ; yet made his peace at the length. But the fall of this great man, being in so high authority and favour, as was thought, with 15 the King; and the manner of carriage of the business, as if there had been secret inquisition upon him for a great time before ; and the cause for which he suffered, which was little more than for saying in effect, that the title of York was better than the title of Lancaster ; which was 20 the case almost of every man, at the least in opinion, was matter of great terror amongst all the King's servants and subjects ; insomuch as no man almost thought himself secure, and men durst scarce commune or talk one with another, but there was a general diffidence every where : 25 which nevertheless made the King rather more absolute tlian more safe. For " bleeding inwards, and shut vapours, " strangle soonest, and oppress most." Hereupon presently came forth swarms and volleys of libels, which are the gusts of liberty of speech restrained, 30 and the females of sedition, containing bitter invectives and slanders against the King and some of the council : for the contriving and dispersing whereof, after great diligence of inquiry, five mean persons were caught up and executed. 149i] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 127 Mean while the King did not neglect Ireland, being the soil where these mushrooms and upstart weeds, that spring up in a night, did chiefly prosper. He sent therefore from hence, for the better settling of his affairs there, commis- sioners of both robes, the prior of Lanthony, to be his 5 chancellor in that kingdom ; and Sir Edward Poynings, with a power of men, and a martial commission, together with a civil power of his lieutenant, with a clause, that the earl of Kildare, then deputy, should obey him. But the wild Irish, who were the principal offenders, fled into the 10 woods and bogs, after their manner ; and those that knew themselves guilty in the pale fled to them. So that Sir Edward Poynings was enforced to make a wild chase upon the wild Irish : where, in respect of the mountains and fastnesses, he did little good. Which, either out of a sus- 15 picious melancholy upon his bad success, or the better to save his service from disgrace, he would needs impute unto the comfort that the rebels should receive underhand from the earl of Kildare ; every light suspicion growing upon the enrl, in respect of the Kildare that was in the action 20 of Lambert Simnel, and slain at Stokefield. Wherefore he caused the earl to be apprehended, and sent into England; where, upon examination, he cleared himself so well, as he was replaced in his government. But Poynings, the better to make compensation of the meagreness of his 25 service in the wars by acts of peace, called a parliament ; where was made that memorable act, which at this day is called Poyning's law, whereby all the statutes of England were made to be of force in Ireland : for before they were not, neither are any now in force in Ireland, which were 30 made in England since that time ; which was the tenth year of the King. About this time began to be discovered in the King 128 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL [1495 that disposition, which afterwards, nourished and whet on by bad counsellors and ministers, proved the blot of his times ; which was the course he took to crush treasure out of his subjects' purses, by forfeitures upon penal laws. At 5 this men did startle the more at this time, because it ap- peared plainly to be in the King's nature, and not out of his necessity, he being now in float for treasure : for that he had newly received the peace-money from France, the benevolence-money from his subjects, and great casualties lo upon the confiscations of the lord chamberlain, and divers others. The first noted case of this kind was that of Sir William Capel, alderman of London ; who, upon sundry penal laws, was condemned in the sum of seven and twenty hundred pounds, and compounded with the King for six- 1 5 teen hundred : and yet after, Empson would have cut another chop out of him, if the King had not died in the instant. The summer following, the King, to comfort his mother, whom he did always tenderly love and revere, and to make 2o open demonstration to the world, that the proceedings against Sir William Stanley, which were imposed upon him by necessity of state, had not in any degree diminished the affection he bare to Thomas his brother, went in progress to Latham, to make merry with his mother and the earl, and 25 lay there divers days. During this progress, Perkin Warbeck finding that time and temporising, which, whilst his practices were covert and wrought well in England, made for him ; did now, when they were discovered and defeated, rather make against him, 30 for that when matters once go down the hill, they stay not without a new force, resolved to try his adventure in some exploit upon England ; hoping still upon the affections of the common people towards the house of York. Which 1495] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI L 129 body of common people he thought was not to be practised upon, as persons of quahty are ; but that the only practice upon their affections was to set up a standard in the field. The place where he should make his attempt, he chose to be the coast of Kent. 5 The King by this time was grown to such a height of reputation for cunning and policy, that every accident and event that went well, was laid and imputed to his foresight, as if he had set it before : as in this particular of Perkin's design upon Kent. For the world would not beHeve after- 10 wards, but the King, having secret intelligence of Perkin's intention for Kent, the better to draw it on, went of purpose into the north afar off, laying an open side unto Perkin, to make him come to the close, and so to trip up his heels, having made sure in Kent beforehand. j 5 But so it was, that Perkin had gathered together a power of all nations, neither in number, nor in the hardiness and courage of the persons, contemptible, but in their nature and fortunes to be feared, as well of friends as enemies ; being bankrupts, and many of them felons, and such as 20 lived by rapine. These he put to sea, and arrived upon the coast of Sandwich and Deal in Kent, about July. There he cast anchor, and to prove the affections of the people, sent some of his men to land, making great boasts of the power that was to follow. The Kentish men, per- 25 ceivmg that Perkin was not followed by any English of name or account, and that his forces consisted but of strangers born, and most of them base people and free- booters, fitter to spoil a coast, than to recover a kingdom ; resorting unto the principal gentlemen of the country, pro- 30 fessed their loyalty to the King, and desired to be directed and commanded for the best of the King's service. The gentlemen entering into consultation, directed some forces B. H. 9 I30 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1495 in good number to shew themselves upon the coast; and some of them to make signs to entice Perkin's soldiers to land, as if they would join with them ; and some others to appear from some other places, and to make semblance as 5 if they fled from them, the better to encourage them to land. But Perkin, who by playing the Prince, or else taught by secretary Frion, had learned thus much, that people under command do use to consult, and after to march in order; and rebels contrariwise run upon an head together in con- I o fusion, considering the delay of time, and observing their orderly and not tumultuary arming, doubted the worst. And therefore the wily youth would not set one foot out of his ship, till he might see things were sure. Wherefore the King's forces^ perceiving that they could draw on no more jr than those that were formerly landed, set upon them and cut them in pieces, ere they could fly back to their ships. In which skirmish, besides those that fled and were slain, there were taken about an hundred and fifty persons. Which, for that the King thought, that to punish a few for 20 example was gentleman's pay ; but for rascal people, they were to be cut off" every man, especially in the beginning of an enterprise; and likewise for that he saw, that Perkin's forces would now consist chiefly of such rabble and scum of desperate people, he therefore hanged them all for the 25 greater terror. They were brought to London all railed in ropes, like a team of horses in a cart, and were executed some of them at London and Wapping, and the rest at divers places upon the sea coast of Kent, Sussex, and Nor- folk, for sea-marks or lighthouses, to teach Perkin's people 30 to avoid the coast. The King being advertised of the land- ing of the rebels, thought to leave his progress : but being certified the next day, that they were partly defeated and partly fled, he continued his progress, and sent Sir Richard 1495] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 131 Guildford into Kent in message; who calling the country together, did much commend from the King their fidelity, manhood, and well handling of that service ; and gave them all thanks, and, in private, promised reward to some particulars. 5 Upon the sixteenth of November, this being the eleventh year of the King, was holden the Serjeants' feast at Ely- place, there being nine Serjeants of that call. The King, to honour the feast, was present with his Queen at the dinner; being a Prince that was ever ready to grace and 10 countenance the professors of the law; having a little of that, that as he governed his subjects by his laws, so he governed his laws by his lawyers. This year also the King entered into league with the Italian potentates for the defence of Italy against France. 15 For King Charles had conquered the realm of Naples, and lost it again, in a kind of felicity of a dream. He passed the whole length of Italy without resistance ; so that it was true which Pope Alexander was wont to say, That the Frenchmen came into Italy with chalk in their hands, to 20 mark up their lodgings, rather than with swords to fight. He likewise entered and won, in effect, the whole king- dom of Naples itself, without striking stroke. But presently thereupon he did commit and multiply so many errors, as was too great a task for the best fortune to overcome. 25 He gave no contentment to the barons of Naples, of the faction of the Angeovines ; but scattered his rewards ac- cording to the mercenary appetites of some about him. He put all Italy upon their guard, by the seizing and hold- ing of Ostia, and the protecting of the liberty of Pisa; which 30 made all men suspect, that his purposes looked farther than his title of Naples. He fell too soon at difference with Ludovico Sfortia, who was the man that carried the keys 9-2 132 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI I. [1495 whicli brought him in, and shut him out. He neglected to extinguish some rehcs of the war. And lastly, in regard of his easy passage through Italy without resistance, he entered into an overmuch despising of the arms of the 5 Italians; whereby he left the realm of Naples at his de- parture so much the less provided. So that not long after his return, the whole kingdom revolted to Ferdinando the younger, and the French were quite driven out. Never- theless Charles did make both great threats, and great lo preparations to re-enter Italy once again. Wherefore at the instance of divers of the states of Italy, and espe- cially of Pope Alexander, there was a league concluded between the said Pope, Maximilian King of the Romans, Henry King of England, Ferdinando and Isabella King 15 and Queen of Spain, for so they are constantly placed in the original treaty throughout, Augustino Barbadico duke of Venice, and Ludovico Sfortia duke of Milan, for the common defence of their estates: wherein though Ferdi- nando of Naples was not named as principal, yet, no doubt, 20 the kingdom of Naples was tacitly included as a fee of tlie church. There died also this year Cecile duchess of York, mother to king Edward the fourth, at her castle of Bark- hamsted, being of extreme years, and who had lived to 25 see three Princes of her body crowned, and four murdered. She was buried at Foderingham, by her husband. This year also the King called his parliament, where many laws were made of a more private and vulgar nature, than ought to detain the reader of an history. And it may 30 be justly suspected by the proceedings following, that as the King did excel in good commonwealth laws, so never- theless he had, in secret, a design to make use of them, as well for collecting of treasure, as for correcting of manners j 1495] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 133 and so meaning thereby to harrow his people, did accu- mulate them the rather. The principal law that was made this parliament, was a law of a strange nature ; rather just than legal ; and more magnanimous than provident. This law did ordain ; That 5 no person that did assist in arms, or otherwise, the King for the time being, should after be impeached therefore, or attainted, either by the course of the law, or by act of parliament. But if any such act of attainder did happen to be made, it should 'be void and of none effect; for that 10 it was agreeable to reason of estate, that the subject should not inquire of the justness of the King's title, or quarrel ; and it was agreeable to good conscience, that, whatsoever the fortunes of the war were, the subject should not suffer for his obedience. The spirit of this law was wonderful 15 pious and noble, being like, in matter of war, unto the spirit of David in matter of plague ; who said. If I have sinned, sb'ike nic ; but what have these sheep done? Neither wanted this law parts of prudent and deep foresight : for it did the better take away occasion for the people to busy 20 themselves to pry into the King's title; for that howso- ever it fell, their safety was already provided for. Besides, it could not but greatly draw unto him the love and hearts of the people, because he seemed more careful for them than for himself. But yet nevertheless it did take off from 25 his party that great tic and spur of necessity, to fight and go victors out of the field ; considering their lives and for- tunes were put in .safety and protected, whether they stood to it, or ran away. But the force and obligation of this law was in itself illusory, as to the latter part of it, by a 30 precedent act of parliament to bind or frustrate a future. For a supreme and absolute power cannot conclude itself, neither can that which is in nature revocable be made 134 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1495 fixed, no more than if a man should appoint or declare by his will, that if he made any later will it should be void. And for the case of the act of parliament, there is a notable precedent of it in King Henry the eighth's time; 5 who doubting he might die in the minority of his son, procured an act to pass. That no statute made during the minority of a King, should bind him or his successors, except it were confirmed by the King under his great seal at his full age. But the first act that passed in King lo Edward the sixth's time, was an act of repeal of that former act ; at which time nevertheless the King was minor. But things that do not bind, may satisfy for the time. There was also made a shoring or under-propping act for the benevolence : to make the sums which any person jc had agreed to pay, and nevertheless were not brought in, to be leviable by course of law. Which act did not only bring in the arrears, but did indeed countenance the whole busi- ness, and was pretended to be made at the desire of those that had been forward to pay. 2o This parliament also was made that good law, which gave the attaint upon a false verdict between party and party, which before was a kind of evangile, irremediable. It extends not to causes capital, as well because they are for the most part at the King's suit ; as because in them, 25 if they be followed in course of indictment, there passeth a double jury, the indictors, and the triers ; and so not twelve men, but four and twenty. But it seemeth that was not the only reason ; for this reason holdeth not in the appeal. But the great reason was, lest it should tend 30 to the discouragement of jurors in cases of life and death; if they should be subject to suit and penalty, where the favour of life maketh against them. It extendeth not also to any suit, where the demand is under the value of 1495] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 135 forty pounds ; for that in such cases of petty value it would not quit the charge, to go about again. There was another law made against a branch of in- gratitude in women, wlio having been advanced by their husbands, or their husbands' ancestors, should alien, and 5 thereby seek to defeat the heirs, or those in remainder, of the lands, whereunto they had been so advanced. The remedy was, by giving power to the next, to enter for a forfeiture. There was also enacted that charitable law, for the ad- 10 mission of poor suitors in forma pauperis, without fee to counseller, attorney, or clerk, whereby poor men became rather able to vex than unable to sue. There were divers other good laws made that parliament, as we said before : but we still observe our manner, in selecting out those, that 1 5 are not of a vulgar nature. The King this while, though he sat in parliament, as in full peace, and seemed to account of the designs of Perkin, who was now returned into Flanders, but as a may-game ; yet having the composition of a wise King, stout without, 20 and apprehensive within, had given order for the watching of beacons upon the coasts, and erecting more where they stood too thin, and had a careful eye where this wandering cloud would break. But Perkin, advised to keep his fire, which hitherto burned as it were upon green wood, alive 25 with continual blowing; sailed again into Ireland, whence he had formerly departed, rather upon the hopes of France, than upon any unreadiness or discouragement he found in that people. But in the space of time between the King's diligence and Poynings's commission had so settled things 3° there, as there was nothing left for Perkin, but the blustering affection of wild and naked people. Wherefore he was ad- vised by his council, to seek aid of the King of Scotland, a 136 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1495 Prince young and valorous, and in good terms with his nobles and people, and ill afifected to King Henry. At this time also both Maximilian and Charles of France began to bear no good will to the King : the one being displeased 5 with the King's prohibition of commerce with Flanders ; the other holding the King for suspect, in regard of his late entry into league with the Italians. Wherefore, besides the open aids of the duchess of Burgundy, which did with sails and oars put on and advance Perkin's designs, there wanted 1 o not some secret tides from Maximilian and Charles, which did further his fortunes : insomuch as they, both by their secret letters and messages, recommended him to the King of Scotland. Perkin therefore coming into Scotland upon those hopes, X r with a well-appointed company, was by the King of Scots, being formerly well prepared, honourably welcomed, and soon after his arrival admitted to his presence, in a solemn manner : for the King received him in state in his cham- l)er of presence, accompanied with divers of his nobles. 20 And Perkin well attended, as well with those that the King had sent before him, as with his own train, entered the room where the King was, and coming near to the King, and bowing a little to embrace him, he retired some paces back, and with a loud voice, that all that were present might 2c hear him, made his declaration in this manner : " High and mighty King, your grace, and these your " nobles here present, may be pleased benignly to bow your " ears, to hear the tragedy of a young man, that by right " ought to hold in his hand the ball of a kingdom ; but by 30 " fortune is made himself a ball, tossed from misery to " misery, and from place to place. You see here before you " the spectacle of a Plantagenet, who hath been carried from "the nursery to the sanctuary; from the sanctuary, to the 1495] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 137 "direful prison; from the prison, to the hand of the cruel "tormentor; and from that hand to the wide wilderness, as " I may truly call it, for so the world hath been to me. So " that he that is born to a great kingdom, hath not ground " to set his foot upon, more than this where he now standeth 5 *' by your princely favour. Edward the fourth, late King of " England, as your grace cannot but have heard, left two " sons, Edward, and Richard duke of York, both very young. " Edward the eldest succeeded their father in the crown, by " the name of King Edward the fifth : but Richard duke of 10 " Gloucester, their unnatural uncle, first thirsting after the "kingdom, through ambition, and afterwards thirsting for " their blood, out of desire to secure himself, employed an "instrument of his, confident to him, as he thought, to "murder them both. But this man that was employed to 15 " execute that execrable tragedy, having ciuelly slain King " Edward, the eldest of the two, was moved partly by re- " morse, and partly by some other means, to save Richard "his brother; making a report nevertheless to the tyrant, " that he had performed his commandment to both brethren. 20 ''This report was accordingly believed, and published gene- " rally : so that the world hath been possessed of an opinion, "that they both were barbarously made away; though ever " truth hath some sparks that fly abroad, until it appear in " due time, as this hath had. But Almighty God, that stop- 25 " ped the mouth of the lion, and saved little Joash from the " tyranny of Athaliah, when she massacred the King's chil- "dren; and did save Isaac, when the hand was stretched " forth to sacrifice him ; preserved the second brother. For " I myself, that stand here in your presence, am that very 30 " Richard duke of York, brother of that unfortunate Prince " King Edward the fifth, now the most rightful surviving "heir male to that victorious and most noble Edward, of 138 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1495 "that name the fourth, late King of England. For the " manner of my escape, it is fit it should pass in silence, or, " at least, in a more secret relation ; for that it may concern " some alive, and the memory of some that are dead. Let 5 " it suffice to think, that I had then a mother living, a " Queen, and one that expected daily such a commandment " from the tyrant, for the murdering of her children. Thus " in my tender age escaping by God's mercy out of London, " I was secretly conveyed over sea : where, after a time, the 10 "party that had me in charge, upon what new fears, change " of mind or practice, God knoweth, suddenly forsook me. " Whereby 1 was forced to wander abroad, and to seek " mean conditions for the sustaining of my life. Wherefore " distracted between several passions, the one of fear to be 15 "known, lest the tyrant should have a new attempt upon "me ; the other of grief and disdain to be unknown, and to " live in that base and servile manner that I did ; I resolved " with myself to expect the tyrant's death, and then to put " myself into my sister's hands, who was next heir to the 20 " crown. But in this season it happened one Henry Tudor, "son to Edmund Tudor earl of Richmond, to come from " France and enter into the realm, and by subtile and foul " means to obtain the crown of the same, which to me right- " fully appertained : so that it was but a change from tyrant 25 "to tyrant. This Henry, my extreme and mortal enemy, so " soon as he had knowledge of my being alive, imagined " and wrought all the subtile ways and means he could, to "procure my final destruction: for my mortal enemy hath " not only falsely surmised me to be a feigned person, giving 30 " me nick-names, so abusing the world ; but also, to defer " and put me from entry into England, hath offered large " sums of money to corrupt the Princes and their ministers, " with whom I have been retained ; and made importune 1495] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 139 labours to certain servants about my person, to murder or poison me, and others to forsake and leave my righteous quarrel, and to depart from my service, as Sir Robert Clif- ford, and others. So that every man of reason may well perceive, that Henry, calling himself King of England, 5 needed not to have bestowed such great sums of treasure, nor so to have busied himself with importune and inces- sant labour and industry, to compass my death and ruin, if I had been such a feigned person. But the truth of my cause being so manifest, moved the most Christian King 10 Charles, and the lady duchess dowager of Burgundy my most dear aunt, not only to acknowledge the truth thereof, but lovingly to assist me. But it seemeth that God above, . for the good of this whole island, and the knitting of these two kingdoms of England and Scotland in a strait concord 1 5 and amity, by so great an obligation, hath reserved the placing of me in the imperial throne of England for the arms and succours of your grace. Neither is it the first time that a King of Scotland hath supported them that were bereft and spoiled of the kingdom of England, as of 20 late, in fresh memory, it was done in the person of Henry the sixth. Wherefore, for that your grace hath given clear signs, that you are in no noble quality inferior to your royal ancestors ; I, so distressed a Prince, was hereby moved to come and put myself into your royal hands, de- 25 siring your assistance to recover my kingdom of England ; promising faithfully to bear myself towards your grace no otherwise, than if I were your own natural brother; and • will, upon the recovery of mine inheritance, gratefully do ' you all the pleasure that is in my utmost power." 30 After Perkin had told his tale, King James answered bravely and wisely ; *' That whatsoever he were, he should " not repent him of putting himself into his hands." And I40 HISTORY OF KING HENRY ]'L. [1495 from that time forth, though there wanted not some about him, that would have persuaded him that all was but an illusion ; yet notwithstanding, either taken by Perkin's amiable and alluring behaviour, or inclining to the recom- r mendation of the great Princes abroad, or willing to take an occasion of a war against King Henry, he entertained him in all things, as became the person of Richard duke of York ; embraced his quarrel ; and, the more to put it out of doubt, that he took him to be a great Prince, and lo not a representation only, he gave consent, that this duke should take to wife the lady Catharine Gordon, daughter to the earl of Huntley, being a near kinswoman to the King himself, and a young virgin of excellent beauty and virtue. Tc Not long after, the King of Scots in person, with Perkin in his company, entered with a great army, though it con- sisted chiefly of borderers being raised somewhat suddenly, into Northumberland. And Perkin, for a perfume before him as he went, caused to be published a jjroclamation' 20 of this tenor following, in the name of Richard duke of York, true inheritor of the crown of England : " IT hath pleased (iotl, who putteth down the mighty " from their seat, and exalteth the humble, and suffereth " not the hopes of the just to perish in the end, to give us 25 " means at the length to shew ourselves armed unto our " lieges and people of England. But far be it from us to " intend their hurt or damage, or to make war upon them, " otherwise than to deliver ourself and them from tyranny " and oppression. For our mortal enemy Henry Tudor, a 30 ^ The original of this proclamation remainetli with Sir Robert Cotton, a worthy preserver and treasurer of rare antiquities : from whose manuscripts I have had much light for the furnishing of this work. 1495] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI I. 141 " false usurper of the crown of England, which to us by " natural and lineal right appertaineth, knowing in his own " heart our undoubted right, we being the very Richard duke " of York, younger son, and now surviving heir male of the ** noble and victorious Edward the fourth, late King of 5 " England, hath not only deprived us of our kingdom, but " likewise by all foul and wicked means sought to betray " us, and bereave us of our life. Yet if his tyranny only " extended itself to our person, although our royal blood "teaches us to be sensible of injuries, it should be less to " to our grief But this Tudor, who boasteth himself to " have overthrown a tyrant, hath, ever since his first en- " trance into his usurped reign, put little in practice, but " tyranny and the feats thereof *' For King Richard, our unnatural uncle, although 15 " desire of rule did blind him, yet in his other actions, '* like a true l^lantagenct, was noble, and loved the honour " of the realm, and the contentment and comfort of his " nobles and people. But this our mortal enemy, agree- " able to the meanness of his l)irth, hath trodden under 20 *' foot the honour of this nation ; selling our best con- '* federates for money, and making merchandise of the " blood, estates, and fortunes of our peers and subjects, " by feigned wars, and dishonourable peace, only to enrich ''his coffers. Nor unlike hatli been his hateful misgovern 25 " ment, and evil deportments at home. First, he liath to •' fortify his false quarrel, caused divers nobles of this our " realm, whom he held suspect and stood in dread of, to " be cruelly murdered ; as our cousin Sir William Stanley, '• lord chamberlain. Sir Simon Mountfort, Sir Robert Rat- 30 " cliffe, William Daubeney, Humphrey Stafford, and many " others, besides such as have dearly bought their lives " with intolerable ransoms : some of which nobles are now 142 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII, [1495 "in the sanctuary. Also he hath long kept, and yet *' keepeth in prison, our right entirely well-beloved cousin, " Edward, son and heir to our uncle duke of Clarence, "and others; withholding from them their rightful in- 5 "heritance, to the intent they should never be of might " and power, to aid and assist us at our need, after the '• duty of their legiances. He also married by compulsion " certain of our sisters, and also the sister of our said '• cousin the earl of Warwick, and divers other ladies of lo ''the royal blood, unto certain of his kinsmen and friends " of simple and low degree ; and, putting apart all well- " disposed nobles, he hath none in favour and trust about " his person, but bishop Fox, Smith, Bray, Lovel, Oliver " King, David Owen, Riseley, Turberville, Tiler, Chomley, 15 '' Empson, James Hobart, John Cut, Garth, Henry Wyat, " and such other caitiffs and villains of birth, which by " subtile inventions, and pilling of the people, have been " the principal finders, occasioners, and counsellors of the " misrule and mischief now reigning in England. 20 " We remembering these premises, with the great and " execrable offences daily committed and done by our " foresaid great enemy and his adherents, in breaking the " liberties and franchises of our mother the holy church, " upon pretences of wicked and heathenish policy, to the 25 "high displeasure of Almighty God, besides the manifold " treasons, abominable murders, manslaughters, robberies, " extortions, the daily pilling of the people by dismes, '' taxes, tallages, benevolences, and other unlawful imposi- " tions, and grievous exactions, with many other heinous •70 '' effects, to the likely destruction and desolation of the " whole realm : shall by God's grace, and the help and " assistance of the great lords of our blood, with the counsel " of other sad persons, see that the commodities of our 1495] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 143 ** realm be employed to the most advantage of the same ; " the intercourse of merchandise betwixt realm and realm ** to be ministered and handled as shall more be to the " common weal and prosperity of our subjects; and all such ** dismes, taxes, tallages, benevolences, unlawful imposi- 5 " tions, and grievous exactions, as be above rehearsed, to " be fordone and laid apart, and never from henceforth ' " to be called upon, but in such cases as our noble pro- " genitors, Kings of England, have of old time been ac- " customed to have the aid, succour, and help of their 10 '' subjects, and true liege-rnen. " And farther, we do, out of our grace and clemency, •' hereby as well publish and promise to all our subjects " remission and free pardon of all by-past offences what- *' soever, against our person or estate, in adhering to our 15 " said enemy, by whom, we know well, they have been " misled, if they shall within time convenient submit them- " selves unto us. And for such as shall come with the " foremost to assist our righteous quarrel, we shall make " them so far partakers of our princely favour and bounty, 20 " as shall be highly for the comfort of them and theirs, " both during their life and after their death : as also we " shall, by all means which God shall put into our hands, " demean ourselves to give royal contentment to all degrees " and estates of our people, maintaining the liberties of 25 " holy church in their entire, preserving the honours, privi- " leges, and preeminences of our nobles, from contempt " of disparagement, according to the dignity of their blood. " We shall also unyoke our people from all heavy burdens ** and endurances, and confirm our cities, boroughs and 30 " towns, in their charters and freedoms, with enlargement " where it shall be deserved ; and in all points give our " subjects cause to think, that the blessed and debonair 144 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1495 '' government of our noble father King Edward, in his " last times, is in us revived. " And forasmuch as the putting to death, or taking alive " of our said mortal enemy, may be a mean to stay much 5 " effusion of blood, which otherwise may ensue, if by " compulsion or fair promises he shall draw after him any '■'■ number of our subjects to resist us, which we desire to " avoid, though we be certainly informed, that our said " enemy is purposed and prepared to fly tlie land, having lo " already made over great masses of the treasure of our " crown, the better to support him in foreign parts, we '' do hereby declare, that whosoever shall take or distress " our said enemy, though the party be of never so mean *' a condition, he shall be by us rewarded with a thousand 15 "pound in money, forthwith to be laid down to him, and "an hundred marks by the year of inheritance; besides " that he may otherwise merit, both toward God and all " good people, for the destruction of such a tyrant. " Lastly, we do all men to wit, and herein we take also 2o " God to witness, that whereas God hath moved the heart " of our dearest cousin, the King of Scotland, to aid us " in person in this our righteous quarrel ; it is altogether '' without any pact or promise, or so much as demand of '' any thing that may prejudice our crown or subjects : 25 "but contrariwise, with i)romise on our said cousin's part, " that whensoever he shall find us in sufficient strength to " get the upper hand of our enemy, which we hope will " be very suddenly, he will forthwith peaceably return into " his own kingdom ; contenting himself only with the glory 30 '* of so honourable an enterprise, and our true and faithful " love and amity : which we shall ever, by the grace of " Almighty God, so order, as shall be to the great comfort " of both kingdoms." 149|] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL 145 But Perkin's proclamation did little edify with the people of England ; neither was he the better welcome for the company he came in. Wherefore the King of Scotland seeing none came in to Perkin, nor none stirred any where in his favour, turned his enterprise into a rode ; 5 and wasted and destroyed the country of Northumberland with fire and sword. But hearing that there were forces coming against him, and not willing that they should find his men heavy and laden with booty, he returned into Scotland with great spoils, deferring farther prosecution 10 till another time. It is said, that Perkin, acting the part of a Prince handsomely, when he saw the Scottish fell to waste the country, came to the King in a passionate man- ner, making great lamentation, and desired, that that might not be the manner of making the war ; for that no crown '5 was so dear to his mind, as that he desired to purchase it with the blood and ruin of his country. Whereunto the King answered half in sport, that he doubted much he was careful for that that was none of his, and that he should be too good a steward for his enemy, to save the country 20 to his use. By this time, being the eleventh year of the King, the interruption of trade between the English and the Flemish began to pinch the merchants of both nations very sore : which moved them by all means they could devise, to 25 aftect and dispose their sovereigns respectively, to open the intercourse again ; wherein time favoured them. For the archduke and his council began to see, that Perkin would prove but a runagate and citizen of the world ; and that it was the part of children to fall out about babies. 3° And the King on his part, after the attempts upon Kent and Northumberland, began to have the business of Perkin in less estimation ; so as he did not put it to account B. H. 10 146 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI I. [1496 in any consultation of state. But that that moved him most was, that being a King that loved wealth and trea- sure, he could not endure to have trade sick, nor any obstruction to continue in the gate-vein, which disperseth 5 that blood. And yet he kept state so far, as first to be sought unto. Wherein the merchant-adventurers likewise, being a strong company at that time, and well under-set with rich men, and good order, did hold out bravely : taking off the commodities of the kingdom, though they lo lay dead upon their hands for want of vent. At the last, commissioners met at London to treat : on the King's part, bishop Fox lord privy seal, viscount Wells, Kendal prior of saint John's, Warham master of the rolls, who began to gain much upon the King's opinion ; Urswick, 1 5 who was almost ever one ; and Riseley : on the archduke's part, the lord Bevers his admiral, the lord Verunsel pre- sident of Flanders, and others. These concluded a perfect treaty, both of amity and intercourse, between the King and the archduke ; containing articles both of state, com- 2o merce, and free fishing. This is that treaty which the Flemings call at this day intercursus magiius ; both be- cause it is more complete than the precedent treaties of the third and fourth year of the King ; and chiefly to give it a difference from the treaty that followed in the one 25 and twentieth year of the King, which they call iniercursus malus. In this treaty, there was an express article against the reception of the rebels of either Prince by other ; pur- porting. That if any such rebel should be required, by the Prince whose rebel he was, of the Prince confederate, that 30 forthwith the Prince confederate should by proclamation command him to avoid the country : which if he did not within fifteen days, the rebel was to stand proscribed, and put out of protection. But nevertheless in this article 149^] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 147 Perkin was not named, neither perhaps contained, because he was no rebel. But by this means his wings were cHpt of his followers that were English. And it was expressly comprised in the treaty, that it should extend to the territories of the duchess dowager. After the intercourse 5 thus restored, the English merchants came again to their mansion at Antwerp, where they were received with pro- cession and great joy. The winter following, being the twelfth year of his reign, the King called again his parliament; where he did much 10 exaggerate both the malice, and the cruel predatory war lately made by the King of Scotland : That that King, being in amity with him, and no ways provoked, should so burn in hatred towards him, as to drink of the lees and dregs of Perkin's intoxication, who was every where else 15 detected and discarded : and that when he perceived it was out of his reach to do the King any hurt, he had turned his arms upon unharmed and unprovided people, to spoil only and depopulate, contrary to the laws both of war and peace : concluding, that he could neither with 20 honour nor with the safety of his peo})le, to whom he did owe protection, let pass these wrongs unrevenged. The parliament understood him well, and gave him a subsidy, limited to the sum of one hundred and twenty thousand pounds, besides two fifteenths : for his wars were always to 25 him as a mine of treasure, of a strange kind of ore ; iron at the top, and gold and silver at the bottom. At this parliament, for that there had been so much time spent in making laws the year before, and for that it was called purposely in respect of the Scottish war, there were no laws 30 made to be remembered. Only there passed a law, at the suit of the merchant-adventurers of England, against the merchant-adventurers of London, for monopolizing and 10 — 2 148 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. [U97 exacting upon the trade : which it seemeth they did a httle to save themselves, after the hard time they had sustained by want of trade. But those innovations were taken away by parHament. 5 But it was fatal to the King to fight for his money ; and though he avoided to fight with enemies abroad, yet he was still enforced to fight for it with rebels at home : for no sooner began the subsidy to be levied in Cornwall, but the people there began to grudge and murmur. The Cornish lo being a race of men, stout of stomach, mighty of body and limb, and that lived hardly in a barren country, and many of them could, for a need, live under ground, that were tin- ners. They muttered extremely, that it was a thing not to be suftered, that for a little stir of the Scots, soon blown 15 over, they should be thus grinded to powder with payments: and said it was for them to i)ay that had too much, and lived idly. But they would eat their bread that they got with the sweat of their brows, and no man should take it from them. And as in the tides of people once up, there 20 want not commonly stirring winds to make them more rough ; so this people did light upon two ringleaders or cap- tains of the rout. The one was Michael Joseph, a black- smith or farrier of Bodmin, a notable talking fellow, and no less desirous to be talked of The other was Thomas Flam- 25 mock, a lawyer, who, by telling his neighbours commonly upon any occasion that the law was on their side, had got- ten great sway amongst them. This man talked learnedly, and as if he could tell how to make a rebellion, and never break the peace. He told the people, that subsidies were 30 not to be granted, nor levied in this case ; that is, for wars of Scotland : for that the law had provided another course, by service of escuage, for those journeys ; much less when all was quiet, and war was made but a pretence to poll and 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 149 pill the people. And therefore that it was good they should not stand now like sheep before the shearers, but put on harness, and take weapons in their hands. Yet to do no creature hurt ; but go and deliver the King a strong petition, for the laying down of those grievous payments, and for the 5 punishment of those that had given him that counsel ; to make others beware how they did the like in time to come. And said, for his part he did not see how they could do the duty of true Englishmen, and good liege-men, except they did deliver the King from such wicked ones, that would 10 destroy both him and the country. Their aim was at arch- bishop Morton and Sir Reginald Bray, who were the King's screens in this envy. After that these two, Flammock and tlie blacksmith, had by joint and several pratings found tokens of consent 1 5 in the multitude, they offered themselves to lead them, until they should hear of better men to be their leaders, which they said would be ere long : telling them fiirtlier, that they would be but their servants, and first in every danger; but doubted not but to make both the west-end and the east-end 20 of England to meet in so good a c^uarrel; and that all, rightly unilerstood, was but for the King's service. The people upon these seditious instigations, did arm, most of them with bows, and arrows, and bills, and such other weapons of rude and country people, and forthwith undei 25 the command of their leaders, which in sucli cases is ever at pleasure, marched out of Cornwall through Devonshire unto Taunton in Somersetshire, without any slaughter, vio- lence, or spoil of the country. At Taunton they killed in fury an officious and eager commissioner for the subsidy, 30 whom they called the provost of Perin. Thence they marched to Wells, where the lord Audley, with whom their leaders had before some secret intelligence, a nobleman of ISO HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 an ancient family, but unquiet and popular, and aspiring to ruin, came in to them, and was by them, with great gladness and cries of joy, accepted as their general; they being now proud that they were led by a nobleman. The lord Audley 5 led them on from Wells to Salisbury and from Salisbury to Winchester. Thence the foolish people, who, in effect, led their leaders, had a mind to be led into Kent, fancying that the people there would join with them ; contrary to all rea- son or judgment, considering the Kentish men had shewed lo great loyalty and affection to the King so lately before. But the rude people had heard Flammock say, that Kent was never conquered, and that they were the freest people of England. And upon these vain noises, they looked for great matters at their hands, in a cause whicli they conceited 15 to be for the liberty of the subject. But when they were come into Kent, the country was so well settled, both by the King's late kind usage towards them, and by the credit and power of the earl of Kent, the lord Abergavenny, and the lord Cobham, as neither gentleman nor yeoman came 20 in to their aid ; which did much damp and dismay many of the simpler sort ; insomuch as divers of them did secretly fly from the army, and went home : but tlie sturdier sort, and those that were most engaged, stood by it, and rather waxed proud, than failed in hopes and courage. For as it 25 did somewhat appal them, that the people came not in to them; so it did no less encourage them, that the King's forces had not set upon them, having marched from the west unto the east of England. Wherefore they kept on their way, and encamped upon Blackheath, between Greenwich 30 and Eltham ; threatening either to bid battle to the King, for now the seas went higher than to Morton and Bray, or to take London within his view ; imagining with themselves, there to find no less fear than wealth. 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 151 But to return to the King. When first he heard of this commotion of the Cornish men occasioned by the subsidy, he was much troubled therewith; not for itself, but in regard of the concurrence of other dangers that did hang over him at that time. For he doubted lest a war from Scotland, a 5 rebellion from Cornwall, and the practices and conspiracies of Perkin and his partakers, would come upon him at once : knowing well, that it was a dangerous triplicity to a mo- narchy, to have the arms of a foreigner, the discontents of subjects, and the title of a pretender to meet. Nevertheless 10 the occasion took him in some part well provided. For as soon as the parliament had broken up, the King had pre- sently raised a puissant army to war upon Scotland. And King James of Scotland likewise, on his part, had made great preparations, either for defence, or for new assailing of 1 5 England. But as for the King's forces, they were not only in preparation, but in readiness presently to set forth, under the conduct of Daubeney the lord chamberlain. But as soon as the King understood of the rebellion of Cornwall, he stayed those forces, retaining them for his own service 20 and safety. But therewithal he despatched the earl of Sur- rey into the north, for the defence and strength of those parts, in case the Scots should stir. But for the course he held towards the rebels, it was utterly differing from his for- mer custom and practice; which was ever full of forwardness 25 and celerity to make head against them, or to set upon them as soon as ever they were in action. This he was wont to do. But now, besides that he was attempered by years, and less in love with dangers, by the continued fruition of a crown ; it was a time when the various appearance to his 30 thoughts of perils of several natures, and from divers parts, did make him judge it his best and surest way, to keep his strength together in the seat and centre of his kingdom : 152 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 according to the ancient Indian emblem, in such a swelling season, to hold the hand upon the middle of the bladder, that no side might rise. Besides, there was no necessity put upon him to alter his counsel. For neither did the rebels 5 spoil the country, in which case it had been dishonour to abandon his people : neither on the other side did their forces gather or increase, which might hasten him to preci- pitate and assail them before they grew too strong. And lastly, both reason of estate and war seemed to agree J Q with this course: for tliat insurrections of base i)eople are commonly more furious in their beginnings. And by this means also he had tliem the more at vantage, being tired and liarassed with a long march ; and more at mercy, being cut off for from their country, and therefore not able by any J c sudden flight to get to retreat, and to renew the troubles. When therefoie the rebels were encamped on Black- heath ui)on the hill, whence they might behold the city of London, and the fair valley about it ; the King knowing well, that it stood liim upon, by how much the more he had 2o hidierto protracted the time in not encountering them, by so much the sooner to desj^atch with them, that it might appear to liave been no coldness in fore-slowing, but wisdom in choosing his time ; resolved with all speed to assail them, and )'et with that providence and surety, as should leave 2^ little to venture or fortune. And having very great and puissant forces about him, the better to master all events and accidents, he divided them into three parts; the first was led by the earl of Oxford in chief, assisted by the earls of Essex and Suffolk. These noblemen were appointed, 30 with some corners of horse, and bands of foot, and good store of artillery, wheeling about to put tliemselves beyond the hill where the rebels were encamped ; and to beset all the skirts and descents thereof, except those that lay to- 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL 153 wards London ; thereby to have these wild beasts, as it . were, in a toil. The second part of his forces, which were those that were to be most in action, and upon which he relied most for the fortune of the day, he did assign to be led by the lord chamberlain, who was appointed to set upon 5 the rebels in front, from that side which is towards London. The third part of his forces, being likewise great and brave forces, he retained about himself, to be ready upon all events to restore the fight, or consummate the victory ; and mean while to secure the city. And for that purpose he 10 encamped in person in Saint George's Fields, putting himself between the city and the rebels. But the city of London, especially at the first, upon the near encamping of the rebels, was in great tumult : as it useth to be with wealthy and populous cities, especially those which for greatness 15 and fortune are queens of their regions, who seldom see out of their windows, or from their towers, an army of enemies. But that which troubled him most, was the conceit, that they dealt with a rout of people, with whom there was no composition or condition, or orderly treating, if need were ; 20 but likely to be bent altogether upon rapine and spoil. And although they had heard that the rebels had behaved themselves quietly and modestly by the way as they went ; yet they doubted much that would not last, but rather make them more hungry, and more in appetite to tall upon spoil in 25 the end. Wherefore there was great running to and fro of people, some to the gates, some to the walls, some to the water-side ; giving themselves alarms and panic fears continually. Nevertheless both Tate the lord mayor, and Shaw and Haddon the sheriffs, did their parts stoutly and 30 well, in arming and ordering the people. And the King likewise did adjoin some captains of experience in the wars, to advise and assist the citizens. But soon after, when they 154 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 understood that the King had so ordered the matter, that the rebels must win three battles, before they could approach the city, and that he had put his own person between the rebels and them, and that the great care was, rather how to 5 impound the rebels that none of them might escape, than that any doubt was made to vanquish them : they grew to be quiet and out of fear ; the rather, for the confidence they reposed, which was not small, in the three leaders, Oxford, Essex, and Daubeney ; all men well famed and loved TO amongst the people. As for Jasper duke of Bedford, whom the king used to employ with the first in his wars, he was then sick, and died soon after. It was the two and twentietli of June, and a Saturday, which was the day of the week the King fancied, when the 15 battle was fought ; though the King had, by all the art he could devise, given out a false day, as if he prepared to give the rebels battle on the Monday following, the better to find them unprovided, and in disarray. The lords that were ai)pointed to circle the hill, had some days before planted 20 themselves, as at the receit, in places convenient. In the afternoon, towards the decline of the day, which was done, the better to keep the rebels in opinion that they should not fight that day, the lord Daubeney marched on towards them, and first beat some troops of them from Deptford- 25 bridge, where they fought manfully; but, being in no great number, were soon driven back, and fled up to their main army upon the hill. The army at that time, hearing of the approach of the King's forces, were putting themselves in array, not without much confusion. But neither had they 30 placed, upon the first high ground towards the bridge, any forces to second the troops below, that kept the bridge; neither had they brought forwards their main battle, which stood in array far into the heath, near to the ascent of the 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 155 hill. So that the earl with his forces mounted the hill, and recovered the plain, without resistance. The lord Daubeney charged them with great fury ; insomuch as he had like, by accident, to have brandled the fortune of the day: for, by inconsiderate forwardness in fighting at the head of his 5 troops, he was taken by the rebels, but immediately rescued and delivered. The rebels maintained the fight for a small time, and for their persons shewed no want of courage ; but being ill armed, and ill led, and without horse or artillery, they were with no great difficulty cut in pieces, and put to to flight. And for their three leaders, the lord Audley, the blacksmith, and Flammock, as commonly the captains of commotions are but half couraged men, suffered themselves to be taken alive. The number slain on the rebels' part were some two thousand men ; their army amounting, as it 15 is said, unto the number of sixteen thousand. The rest were, in effect, all taken ; for that the hill, as was said, was encompassed with the King's forces round about. On the King's part there died about three hundred, most of them shot with arrows, which were reported to be of the length of 20 a tailor's yard ; so strong and mighty a bow the Cornish men were said to draw. The victory thus obtained, the King created divers ban- nerets, as well upon Blackheath, where his lieutenant had won the field, whither he rode in person to perform the said 25 creation, as in St George's Fields, where his own person had been encamped. And for matter of liberality, he did, by open edict, give the goods of all the prisoners unto those that had taken them ; either to take them in kind, or com- pound for them, as they could. After matter of honour 30 and liberality, followed matter of severity and execution. The lord Audley was led from Newgate to Tower-hill, in a paper coat painted with his own arms ; the arms reversed, 156 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VTL [1497 the coat torn, and he at Tower-hill beheaded. Flammock and the bhicksmith were hanged, drawn, and quartered at Tyburn : the blacksmith taking pleasure upon the hurdle, as it seemeth by words that he uttered, to think that he should 5 be famous in after-times. The King was once in mind to have sent down Flanmiock and the blacksmith to have been executed in Cornwall, for the more terror : but being adver- tised that the country was yet unquiet and boiling, he thought better not to irritate the people forther. All the ] o rest were pardoned by proclamation, and to take out their pardons under seal, as many as would. So that, more than . the blood drawn in the field, the king did satisfy himself with the lives of only three offenders, for the expiation of this great rebellion. jr It was a strange thing to observe the variety and ine- quality of the King's executions and pardons : and a man would think it, at the first, a kind of lottery or chance. But, looking into it more nearly, one shall find there was reason for it, much more, perhaps, than after so long a distance of 20 time we can now discern. In the Kentish commotion, which was but an handful of men, there were executed to the number of one hundred and fifty : and in this so mighty a rebellion but three. Whether it were that the King put to account the men that were slain in the field, or that he 25 was not willing to be severe in a popular cause, or that the harmless behaviour of this people, that came from the west of England to the east, without mischief almost, or spoil of the country, did somewhat mollify him, and move him to compassion; or lastly, that he made a great difference 30 between people that did rebel upon wantonness, and them that did rebel upon want. After the Cornish men were defeated, there came from Calais to the Kin^r an honourable embassage from the 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 157 French King, which had arrived at Calais a month before, and there was stayed in respect of the troubles, but honour- ably entertained and defrayed. The King, at their first coming, sent unto them, and prayed them to have patience, till a little smoke, that was raised in his country, were over, 5 which would soon be : slighting, as his manner was, that openly, which nevertheless he intended seriously. This embassage concerned no great aftair, but only the piolongation of days for payment of moneys, and some other particulars of the frontiers. And it was, indeed, but a 10 wooing embassage, with good respects to entertain the King in good affection ; but nothing was done or handled to the derogation of the King's late treaty with the Italians. But during the time that the Cornish men were in their march towards London, the King of Scotland, well adver- 15 tised of all that passed, and knowing himself sure of a war from England, whensoever those stirs were appeased, neglected not his opi)ortunity; but thinking the King had his hands full, entered the frontiers of England again with an army, and besieged the castle of Norham in person, with 20 part of his forces, sending the rest to forage the country. But Fox bishop of Durham, a wise man, and one that could see through the present to the future, doubting as much before, had caused his castle of Norham to be strongly fortified, and furnished with all kind of munition : and had 25 manned it likewise with a \ cry great numl>er of tall soldiers, more than for the proportion of the castle, reckoning rather upon a sharp as.sault, than a long siege. And for the coun- try likewise, he had caused the people to withdraw their cattle and goods into fast places, that were not of easy 30 approach ; and sent in post to the earl of Surrey, who was not far off, in Yorkshire, to come in diligence to the succour. So as the Scottish King both failed of doing good upon the iS8 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 castle, and his men had but a catching harvest of their spoils : and when he understood that the earl of Surrey was coming on with great forces, he returned back into Scotland. The earl, finding the castle freed, and the enemy retired, 5 pursued with all celerity into Scotland, hoping to have over- taken the Scottish King, and to have given him battle; but, not attaining him in time, sat down before the castle of Aton, one of the strongest places, then esteemed, between Berwick and Edinburgh, which in a small time he took. I o And soon after, the Scottish King retiring farther into his country, and the weather being extraordinary foul and stormy, the earl returned into England. So that the expe- ditions on both parts were, in etitect, but a castle taken, and a castle distressed ; not answerable to the puissance of the 15 forces, nor to the heat of the quarrel, nor to the greatness of the expectation. Amongst these troubles, both civil and external, came into England from Spain, Peter Hialas, some call him Elias, surely he was the forerunner of the good hap that we enjoy 20 at this day: for his embassage set the truce between England and Scotland ; the truce drew on the peace ; the peace the marriage ; and the marriage the union of the kingdoms ; a man of great wisdom, and, as those times were, not un- learned ; sent from Eerdinando and Isabella, Kings of 25 Spain, unto the King, to treat a marriage between Catha- rine, their second daughter, and Prince Arthur. This treaty was by him set in a very good way, and almost brought to perfection. But it so fell out by the way, that upon some conference which he had with the King touching this busi- 30 ness, the King, who had a great dexterity in getting sud- denly into the bosom of ambassadors of foreign Princes, if he liked the men ; insomuch as he would many times communicate with them of his own affairs, yea, and employ 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 159 them in his service, fell into speech and discourse incidently, concerning the ending of the debates and differences with Scotland. For the King naturally did not love the barren wars with Scotland, though he made his profit of the noise of them. And he wanted not in the council of Scotland, 5 those that would advise their King to meet him at the half way, and to give over the war with England ; pretending to be good patriots, but indeed favouring the affairs of the King. Only his heart was too great to begin with Scotland for the motion of peace. On the other side, he had met 10 with an ally of Ferdinando of Arragon, as fit for his turn as could be. For after that King Ferdinando had, upon assured confidence of the marriage to succeed, taken upon him the person of a fraternal ally to the King, he would not let, in a Spanish gravity, to counsel the King in his own j- affairs. And the King on his part, not being wanting to himself, but making use of every man's humours, made his advantage of this in such things as he thought either not decent, or not pleasant to proceed Irom himself; putting them ott" as done by the counsel of Ferdinando. Where- 20 fore he was content that Hialas, as in a matter moved and advised from Hialas himself, should go into Scotland, to treat of a concord between the two Kings. Hialas took it upon him, and coming to the Scottish King, after he had with much art brought King James to hearken to the more 25 safe and quiet counsels, wrote unto the King, that he hoped that peace would with no great difficulty cement and close, if he would send some wise and temperate counsellor of his own, that might treat of the conditions. Whereupon the King directed bishop Fox, who at that time was at 30 his castle of Norham, to confer with Hialas, and they both to treat with some commissioners deputed from the Scottish King. The commissioners on both sides met. i6o HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 But after mucli dispute upon the articles and conditions of peace, propounded upon either part, they could not conclude a peace. The chief impediment thereof was the demand of the King to have Perkin delivered into his 5 hands, as a reproach to all Kings, and a person not pro- tected by the law of nati-ons. The King of Scotland, on the other side, peremptorily denied so to do, saying, that he, for his part, was no competent judge of Perkin's title : but that he had received him as a suppliant, protected him lo as a person fled for refuge, espoused him with his kin.-j- woman, and aided him with his arms, uj^on the belief that he was a prince ; and therefore that he could not now with his honour so unrip, and, in a sort, put a lie upon all that he had said and done before, as to deliver him uj) to his 15 enemies. The bishop likewise, who had certain ])roud in- structions from the King, at the least in the front, though there were a pliant clause at the foot, that remitted all to the bishop's discretion, and required him by no means to break off in ill terms, after that he had failed to obtain 20 the delivery of Perkin, did move a second point of his instructions, which was, that the Scottish King would give the King an interview in person at Newcastle. But this being reported to the Scottish King, his answer was, that he meant to treat a peace, and not to go a begging for 25 it. The bishop also, according to another article of his instructions, demanded restitution of the spoils taken by the Scottish, or damages for the same. But the Scottish commissioners answered, that that was but as water spilt upon the ground, which could not be gotten up again ; 30 and that the King's people were better able to bear the loss, than their master to repair it. But in the end, as persons capable of reason, on both sides they made rather a kind of recess than a breach of treaty, and concluded 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII i6i upon a truce for some months following. But the King of Scotland, though he would not formally retract his judgment of Perkin, wherein he had engaged himself so far ; yet in his private opinion, upon often speech with the Englishmen, and divers other advertisements, began to 5 suspect him for a counterfeit.- Wherefore in a noble fashion he called him unto him, and recounted the bene- fits and favours that he had done him in making him his ally, and in provoking a mighty and opulent King by an offensive war in his quarrel, for the space of two years to- 10 gether; nay more, that he had refused an honourable peace, whereof he had a fair offer, if he would have delivered him; and that, to keep his promise with him, he had deeply offended both his nobles and people, whom he might not hold in any long discontent: and therefore re- 15 quired him to think of his own fortunes, and to choose out some fitter place for his exile : Telling him withal, that he could not say, but the English had forsaken him before the Scottish, for that, upon two several trials, none had declared themselves on his side ; but nevertheless he 20 would make good what he said to him at his first receiv- ing, which was that he should not repent him for putting himself into his hands ; for that he would not cast him off, but help him with shipping and means to transport him where he should desire. Perkin, not descending at 25 all from his stage-like greatness, answered the King in few words, that he saw his time was not yet come ; but whatsoever his fortunes were, he should both think and speak honour of the King. Taking his leave, he would not think on Flanders, doubting it was but hollow ground 30 for him since the treaty of the archduke, concluded the year before ; but took his lady, and such followers as would not leave him, and sailed over into Ireland. B. H. II 1 62 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 This twelfth year of the King, a little before this time, Pope Alexander, who loved best those Princes that were furthest off, and with whom he had least to do, taking very thankfully the King's late entrance into league for the 5 defence of Italy, did remunerate him with an hallowed sword and cap of maintenance, sent by his nuncio. Pope Innocent had done the like, but it was not received in that glory : for the King appointed the mayor and his brethren to meet the Pope's orator at London-bridge, and lo all the streets between the bridge-foot and the palace of Paul's, where the King then lay, were garnished with the citizens, standing in their liveries. And the morrow after, being Allhallovvs day, the King, attended with many of his prelates, nobles, and principal courtiers, went in procession 1 2 to Paul's, and the cap and sword were borne before him. And after the procession, the King himself remaining seated in the quire, the lord archbishop, upon the greece of the quire, made a long oration : setting forth the great- ness and eminency of that honour which the Pope, in 2o these ornaments and ensigns of benediction, had done the King ; and how rarely, and upon what high deserts, they used to be bestowed : And then recited the King's prin- cipal acts and merits, which had made him appear worthy, in the eyes of his Holiness, of this great honour. 25 All this while the rebellion of Cornwall, whereof we have spoken, seemed to have no relation to Perkin ; save that perhaps Perkin's proclamation had stricken upon the right vein, in promising to lay down exactions and pay- ments, and so had made them now and then have a kind 30 thought on Perkin. But now these bubbles by much stirring began to meet, as they use to do upon the top of water. The King's lenity by that time the Cornish rebels, who were taken and pardoned, and, as it was said, 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 163 many of them sold by them that had taken them, for twelve pence and two shillings apiece, were come down into their country, had rather emboldened them, than re- claimed them ; insomuch as they stuck not to say to their neighbours and countrymen, that the King did well to 5 pardon them, for that he knew he should leave few sub- jects in England, if he hanged all that were of their mind: and began whetting and inciting one another to renew the commotion. Some of the subtilest of them, hearing of Perkin's being in Ireland, found means to send to him to 10 let him know, that if he would come over to them, they would serve him. When Perkin heard this news, he began to take heart again, and advised upon it with his council, which were principally three; Heme a mercer, that had fled for debt; 15 Skelton a tailor, and Astley a scrivener ; for secretary Frion was gone. These told him, that he was mightily overseen, both when he went into Kent, and when he went into Scotland ; the one being a place so near London, and under the King's nose ; and the other a nation so dis- 20 tasted with the people of England, that if they had loved him never so well, yet they would never have taken his part in that company. But if he had been so happy as to have been in Cornwall at the first, when the people began to take arms there, he had been crowned at West- 25 minster before this time. For, these Kings, as he had now experience, would sell poor Princes for shoes. But he must rely wholly upon people ; and therefore advised him to sail over with all possible speed into Cornwall : which accordingly he did ; having in his company four 30 small barks, with some sixscore or sevenscore fighting men. He arrived in September at Whitsand Bay, and forthwith came to Bodmin, the blacksmith's town ; where there II — 2 1 64 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 assembled unto him to the number of three thousand men of the rude people. There he set forth a new proclamation, stroking the people with fair promises, and humouring them with invectives against the King and his government. And 5 as it fareth with smoke, that never loseth itself till it be at the highest ; he did now before his end raise his style, en- titling himself no more Richard duke of York, but Richard the fourth, King of England. His council advised him by all means to make himself master of some good walled lo town; as well to make his men find the sweetness of rich spoils, and to allure to him all loose and lost people, by like hopes of booty ; as to be a sure retreat to his forces, in case they should have any ill day, or unlucky chance in the field. Wherefore they took heart to them, and went 15 on, and besieged the city of Exeter, the principal town for strength and wealth in those parts. When they were come before Exeter, they forbare to use any force at the first, but made continual shouts and outcries to terrify the inhabitants. They did likewise in divers places 20 call and talk to them from under the walls, to join with them, and be of their party ; telling them, that the King would make them another London, if they would be the first town that should acknowledge him. But they had not the wit to send to them, in any orderly fashion, agents or 25 chosen men, to tempt them and to treat with them. The citizens on their part shewed themselves stout and loyal subjects : neither was there so much as any tumult or di- vision amongst them, but all prepared themselves for a valiant defence, and making good the town. For well they ^o saw, that the rebels were of no such number or power, that they needed to fear them as yet ; and well they hoped, that before their numbers increased, the King's succours would come in. And, howsoever, they thought it the extremest of 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL 165 evils, to put themselves at the mercy of those hungry and disorderly people. Wherefore setting all things in good order within the town, they nevertheless let down with cords, from several parts of the walls privily, several mes- sengers, that if one came to mischance, another might pass 5 on, which should advertise the King of the state of the town, and implore his aid. Perkin also doubted, that suc- cours would come ere long ; and therefore resolved to use his utmost force to assault the town. And for that purpose having mounted scaling-ladders in divers places upon the 10 walls, made at the same instant an attempt to force one of the gates. But having no artillery nor engines, and finding that he could do no good by ramming with logs of timber, nor by the use of iron bars, and iron crows, and such other means at hand, he had no way left him but to set one of 15 the gates on fire, which he did. But the citizens well per- ceiving the danger, before the gate could be fully consumed, blocked up the gate, and some space about it on the inside, with faggots and other fuel, which they likewise set on fire, and so repulsed fire with fire ; and in the meantime raised 20 up nunpiers of earth, and cast up deep trenches, to serve instead of wall and gate. And for the scaladoes, they had so bad success, as the rebels were driven from the walls with the loss of two hundred men. The King when he heard of Perkin's siege of Exeter, 25 made sport with it, and said to them that were about him, that the King of rake-hells was landed in the west, and that he hoped now to have the honour to see him, which he could never yet do. And it appeared plainly to those that were about the King, that he was indeed much joyed with 30 the news of Perkin's being in English ground, where he could have no retreat by land; thinking now, that he should be cured of those privy stitches, which he had long had i66 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 about his heart, and at some times broken his sleeps, in the midst of all his felicity. And to set all men's hearts on fire, he did by all possible means let it appear, that those that should now do him service to make an end of these troubles, 5 should be no. less accepted of him, than he that came upon the eleventh hour, and had the whole wages of the day. Therefore now, like the end of a play, a great number came upon the stage at once. He sent the lord chamberlain, and the lord Brook, and Sir Rice ap Thomas, with expedite lo forces to speed to Exeter, to the rescue of the town, and to spread the fame of his own following in person with a royal army. The earl of Devonshire, and his son, with the Carews, and the Fulfords, and other principal persons of Devonshire, uncalled from the court, but hearing that the 15 King's heart was so much bent upon this service, made haste with troops that they had raised, to be the first that should succour the city of Exeter, and prevent the King's succours. The duke of Buckingham Hkcwise, with many brave gentlemen, put themselves in arms, not staying either 20 the King's or the lord chamberlain's coming on, but making a body of forces of themselves, the more to endear their merit ; signifying to the King their readiness, and desiring to know his pleasure. So that according to the proverb, in the coming down, every saint did help. 25 Perkin, hearing this thunder of arms, and preparations against him from so many parts, raised his siege, and marched to Taunton ; beginning already to squint one eye upon the crown, and another upon the sanctuary : though the Cornish men were become like metal often fired and 30 quenched, churlish, and that would sooner break than bow ; swearing and vowing not to leave him, till the uttermost drop of their blood were spilt. He was at his rising from Exeter between six and seven thousand strong, many having 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL 167 come unto him after he was set before Exeter, upon fame of so great an enterprise, and to partake of the spoil ; though upon the raising of the siege some did sHp away. When he was come near Taunton, he dissembled all fear, and seemed all the day to use diligence in preparing all things ready to 5 fight. But about midnight, he fled with threescore horse to Bewdly in the New Forest, where he and divers of his company registered themselves sanctuary men, leaving his Cornish men to the four winds; but yet thereby easing them of their vow, and using his wonted compassion, not to be 10 by when his subjects' blood should be spilt. The King as soon as he heard of Perkin's flight, sent presently five hun- dred horse to pursue and apprehend him, before he should get either to the sea, or to that same little island, called a sanctuary. But they came too late for the latter of these. 15 Therefore all they could do, was to beset the sanctuary, and to maintain a strong watch about it, till the King's pleasure were farther known. As for the rest of the rebels, they, being destitute of tiieir head, without stroke stricken, sub- mitted themselves unto the King's mercy. And the King, 20 who commonly drew blood, as physicians do, rather to save life than to spill it, and was never cruel when he was secure; now he saw the danger was past, pardoned them all in the end, except some few desperate persons, which he reserved to be executed, the better to set off his mercy towards the 25 rest. There were also sent with all speed some horse to Saint Michael's mount in Cornwall, where the lady Catharine Gordon was left by her husband, whom in all fortunes she entirely loved ; adding the virtues of a wife to the virtues of her sex. The King sent in the greater diligence, not know- 30 ing whether she might be with child, whereby the business would not have ended in Perkin's person. When she was brought to the King, it was commonly said, that the King i68 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 received her not only with compassion, but with affection; pity giving more impression to her excellent beauty. Where- fore comforting her, to serve as well his eye as his fame, he sent her to his Queen, to remain with her ; giving her very 5 honourable allowance for the support of her estate, which she enjoyed both during the King's life, and many years after. The name of the White Rose, which had been given to her husband's false title, was continued in common speech to her true beauty. lo The King went forwards on his journey, and made a joyful entrance into Exeter, where he gave the citizens great commendations and thanks ; and taking the sword he wore from his side, he gave it to the mayor, and commanded it should be ever after carried before him. There also he 15 caused to be executed some of the ringleaders of the Cor- nish men, in sacrifice to the citizens whom they had put in fear and trouble. At Exeter the King consulted with his council, whether he should offer life to Perkin if he would quit the sanctuary, and voluntarily submit himself The 20 council were divided in opinion : some advised the King to take him out of sanctuary perforce, and to put him to death, as in a case of necessity, which in itself dispenseth with con- secrated places and things : wherein they doubted not also but the King should find the Pope tractable, to ratify his 25 deed, either by declaration, or, at least, by indulgence. Others were of opinion, since all was now safe, and no far- ther hurt could be done, that it was not worth the exposing of the King to new scandal and envy. A third sort fell upon the opinion, that it was not possible for the King ever, 30 either to satisfy the world well touching the imposture, or to learn out the bottom of the conspiracy, except by promise of life and pardon, and other fair means, he should get Perkin into his hands. But they did all in their preambles 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 169 much bemoan the King's case, with a kind of indignation at his fortune ; that a Prince of his high wisdom and virtue, should have been so long and so oft exercised and vexed with idols. But the King said, that it was the vexation of God Almighty himself to be vexed with idols, and therefore 5 that that was not to trouble any of his friends: and that for himself, he always despised them; but was grieved that they had put his people to such trouble and misery. But in con- clusion, he leaned to the third opinion, and so sent some to deal with Perkin: who seeing himself prisoner, and destitute 10 of all hopes, having tried princes and people, great and small, and found all either false, faint, or unfortunate, did gladly accept of the condition. The King did also, while he was at Exeter, appoint the lord Darcy, and others com- missioners, for the fining of all such as were of any value, 15 and had any hand or partaking in the aid or comfort of Perkin, or the Cornish men, either in the field or in the flight. These commissioners proceeded with such strictness and severity, as did much obscure the King's mercy in 20 sparing of blood, with the bleeding of so much treasure. Perkin was brought into the King's court, but not to the King's presence ; though the King, to satisfy his curiosity, saw him sometimes out of a window, or in passage. He was in shew at liberty, but guarded with all care and watch 25 that was possible, and willed to follow the King to London. But from his first appearance upon the stage, in his new person of a sycophant, or juggler, instead of his former per- son of a prince, all men may think how he was exposed to the derision, not only of the courtiers, but also of the com- 30 mon people, who flocked about him as he went along ; that one might know afar ofl" where the owl was, by the flight of birds : some mocking, some wondering, some cursing, some I70 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 prying and picking matter out of his countenance and ges- ture to talk of: so that the false honour and respects which he had so long enjoyed, was plentifully repaid in scorn and contempt. As soon as he was come to London, the King 5 gave also the city the solace of this may-game : for he was conveyed leisurely on horseback, but not in any ignominious fashion, through Cheapside and Cornhill, to the Tower; and from thence back again to Westminster with the churm' of a thousand taunts and reproaches. But to amend the ID show, there followed a little distance off Perkin, an inward counsellor of his, one that had been serjeant-farrier to the King. This fellow, when Perkin took sanctuary, chose rather to take an holy habit than an holy place, and clad himself like an hermit, and in that weed wandered about 15 the country, till he was discovered and taken. But this man was bound hand and foot upon the horse, and came not back with Perkin, but was left at the Tower, and within few days after executed. Soon after, now that Perkin could tell better what himself was, he was diligently examined; 20 and after his confession taken, an extract was made of such parts of them, as were thought fit to be divulged, which was printed and dispersed abroad : wherein the King did himself no right : for as there was a laboured tale of particulars, of Perkin's father and mother, and grandsire and grandmother, 25 and uncles and cousins, by names and surnames, and from what places he travelled up and down ; so there was little or nothing to purpose of anything concerning his designs, or any practices that had been held with him; nor the duchess of Burgundy herself, that all the world did take 30 knowledge of, as the person that had put life and being into the whole business, so much as named or pointed at. So that men missing of that they looked for, looked about for ^ Cum choro. 1497] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 171 they knew not what, and were in more doubt than before : but the King chose rather not to satisfy, than to kindle coals. At that time also it did not appear by any new examinations or commitments, that any other person of quality was discovered or appeached, though the King's 5 closeness made that a doubt dormant. About this time a great fire in the night-time suddenly began at the King's palace at Shene, near unto the King's own lodgings, whereby a great part of the building was con- sumed, with much costly household stuff; which gave the 10 King occasion of building from the ground that fine pile of Richmond, which is now standing. Somewhat before this time also, there fell out a me- morable accident : There was one Sebastian Gabato, a Venetian, dwelling in Bristol, a man seen and expert in i^ cosmography and navigation. This man seeing the success, and emulating perhaps the enterprise of Christophorus Co- lumbus in that fortunate discovery towards the south-west, which had been by him made some six years before, con- ceited with himself, that lands might likewise be discovered 20 towards the north-west. And surely it may be he had more firm and pregnant conjectures of it, than Columbus had of this at the first. For the two great islands of the old and new world, being, in the shape and making of them, broad towards the north, and pointed towards the south; it is 25 likely, that the discovery first began where the lands did nearest meet. And there had been before that time a dis- covery of some lands, which they took to be islands, and were indeed the continent of America, towards the north- west. And it may be, that some relation of this nature 30 coming afterwards to the knowledge of Columbus, and by him suppressed (desirous rather to make his enterprise the child of his science and fortune, than the follower of a 172 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1497 former discovery), did give him better assurance, that all was not sea, from the west of Europe and Africa unto Asia, than either Seneca's prophecy or Plato's antiquities, or the nature of the tides and landwinds, and the like, which were the 5 conjectures that were given out, whereupon he should have relied : though I am not ignorant, that it was likewise laid unto the casual and wind-beaten discovery, a little before, of a Spanish pilot, who died in the house of Columbus. But this Gabato bearing the King in hand, that he would find ID out an island endued with rich commodities, procured him to man and victual a ship at Bristol, for the discovery of that island : with whom ventured also three small ships of London merchants, fraught with some gross and slight wares, fit for commerce with barbarous people. He sailed, 15 as he affirmed at his return, and made a chart thereof, very far westwards, with a quarter of the north, on the north side of Tierra de Labrador, until he came to the latitude of sixty seven degrees and a half, finding the seas still open. It is certain also, that the King's fortune had a tender of that 20 great empire of the West Indies. Neither was it a refusal on the King's part, but a delay by accident, that put by so gi-eat an acquest : for Christophorus Columbus, refused by the King of Portugal, who would not embrace at once both east and west, employed his brother Bartholomaeus Colum- 25 bus unto King Henry, to negotiate for his discovery: and it so fortuned, that he was taken by pirates at sea, by which accidental impediment he was long ere he came to the King : so long, that before he had obtained a capitulation with the King for his brother, the enterprise by him was 30 achieved, and so the West Indies by providence were then reserved for the crown of Castile. Yet this sharpened the King so, that not only in this voyage, but again in the six- teenth year of his reign, and Hkewise in the eighteenth 1498] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 173 thereof, he granted forth new commissions for the discovery and investing of unknown lands. In this fourteenth year also, by God's wonderful provi- dence, that bovveth things unto his will, and hangeth great weights upon small wires, there fell out a trifling and unto- c ward accident, that drew on great and happy effects. During the truce with Scotland, there were certain Scottish young gentlemen that came into Norham town, and there made merry with some of the English of the town : and having little to do, went sometimes forth, and would stand looking ^q upon the castle. Some of the garrison of the castle, ob- serving this their doing twice or thrice, and having not their minds purged of the late ill blood of hostility, either sus- pected them, or quarrelled them for spies : whereupon they fell at ill words, and from words to blows ; so that many i c were wounded of either side, and the Scottish men, being strangers in the town, had the worst ; insomuch that some of them were slain, and the rest made haste home. The matter being complained on, and often debated before the wardens of the marches of both sides, and no good order 20 taken ; the King of Scotland took it to himself, and being much kindled, sent a herald to the King to make protesta- tion, that if reparation were not done, according to the conditions of the truce, his King did denounce war. The King, who had often tried fortune, and was inclined to 2r peace, made answer, that what had been done, was utterly against his will, and without his privity ; but if the garrison soldiers had been in fault, he would see them punished, and the truce in all points to be preserved. But this answer seemed to the Scottish King but a delay, to make the com- ^o plaint breathe out with time ; and therefore it did rather exasperate him than satisfy him. Bishop Fox, understand- ing from the King that the Scottish King was still discontent 174 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1498 and impatient, being troubled that the occasion of breaking of the truce should grow from his men, sent many humble and deprecatory letters to the Scottish King to appease him. Whereupon King James, mollified by the bishop's submis- 5 sive and eloquent letters, wrote back unto him, that he was in part moved by his letters, yet he should not be fully satisfied, except he spake with him, as well about the com- pounding of the present differences, as about other matters that might concern the good of both kingdoms. The lo bishop, advising first with the King, took his journey for Scotland. The meeting was at Melross, an abbey of the Cistercians, where the King then abode. The King first roundly uttered unto the bishop his offence conceived for the insolent breach of truce, by his men of Norham castle : 15 whereunto bishop Fox made such humble and smooth an- swer, as it was like oil into the wound, whereby it began to heal : and this was done in the presence of the King and his council. After, the King spake with the bishop apart, and opened himself unto him, saying, that these temporary 20 truces and peaces were soon made, and soon broken, but that he desired a straiter amity with the King of England ; discovering his mind, that if the King would give him in marriage the lady Margaret, his eldest daughter, that indeed might be a knot indissoluble. That he knew well what 25 place and authority the bishop deservedly had with his mas- ter : therefore, if he would take the business to heart, and deal in it effectually, he doubted not but it would succeed well. The bishop answered soberly, that he thought himself rather happy than worthy to be an instrument in such a 30 matter, but would do his best endeavour. Wherefore the bishop returning to the King, and giving account what had passed, and finding the King more than well disposed in it, gave the King advice ; first to proceed to a conclusion of 1499] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI L 175 peace, and then to go on with the treaty of marriage by degrees. Hereupon a peace was concluded, which was pubhshed a little before Christmas, in the fourteenth year of the King's reign, to continue for both the Kings' lives, and the over-liver of them, and a year after. In this peace 5 there was an article contained, that no Englishman should enter into Scotland, and no Scottishman into England, without letters commendatory from the Kings of either Nation. This at the first sight might seem a means to con- tinue a strangeness between the nations; but it was done to 10 lock in the borderers. This year there was a^so born to the King a third son, who was christened by the name of Edmund, and shortly after died. And much about the same time came news of the death of Charles the French King, for whom there were 15 celebrated solemn and princely obsequies. It was not long but Perkin, who was made of quicksilver, which is hard to hold or imprison, began to stir. For de- ceiving his keepers, he took him to his heels, and made speed to the sea-coasts. But presently all corners were laid 20 for him, and such diligent pursuit and search made, as he was fain to turn back, and get him to the house of Bethle- hem, called the priory of Shene (which had the privilege of sanctuary), and put himself into the hands of the prior of that monastery. The prior was thought an holy man, and 25 much reverenced in those days. He came to the King, and besought the King for Perkin's life only, leaving him other- wise to the King's discretion. Many about the King were again more hot than ever, to have the King to take him forth and hang him. But the King, that had a high stomach 30 and could not hate any that he despised, bid, " Take him "forth, and set the knave in the stocks;" and so promising the prior his life, he caused him to be brought forth. And 176 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1499 within two or three days after, upon a scaffold set up in the palace-court at Westminster, he was fettered and set in the stocks for the whole day. And the next day after, the like was done by him at the cross in Cheapside, and in both 5 places he read his confession, of which we made mention before ; and was from Cheapside conveyed and laid up in the Tower. Notwithstanding all this, the King was, as was partly touched before, grown to be such a partner with for- tune as nobody could tell what actions the one, and ID what the other owned. For it was believed generally, that Perkin was betrayed, and that this escape was not without the King's privity, who had him all the time of his flight in a line ; and that the King did this, to pick a quarrel to him to put him to death, and to be rid of him at once : but this 15 is not probable. For that the same instruments who ob- served him in his flight, might have kept him from getting into sanctuary. But it was ordained, that this winding-ivy of a Plantagenet should kill the true tree itself For Perkin, after he had 20 been a while in the Tower, began to insinuate himself into the favour and kindness of his keepers, servants to the lieutenant of the Tower Sir John Digby, being four in number; Strangeways, Blewet, Astwood, and Long Roger. These varlets, with mountains of promises, he sought to 25 corrupt, to obtain his escape ; but knowing well, that his own fortunes were made so contemptible, as he could feed no man's hopes, and by hopes he must work, for rewards he had none, he had contrived with himself a vast and tragical plot ; which was, to draw into his company Edward Plan- 30 tagenet earl of Warwick, then prisoner in the Tower; whom the weary life of a long imprisonment, and the often and renewing fears of being put to death, had softened to take any impression of counsel for his liberty. This young Prince 1499] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL 177 he thought these servants would look upon, though not upon himself: and therefore, after that by some message by one or two of them, he had tasted of the earl's consent ; it was agreed that these four should murder their master the lieu- tenant secretly in the night, and make their best of such 5 money and portable goods of his, as they should find ready at hand, and get the keys of the Tower, and presently let forth Perkin and the earl. But this conspiracy was revealed in time, before it could be executed. And in this again the opinion of the King's great wisdom did surcharge him with 10 a sinister fame, that Perkin was but his bait, to entrap the earl of Warwick. And in the very instant while this con- spiracy was in working, as if that also had been the King's industry, it was fatal, that there should break forth a coun- terfeit earl of Warwick, a cordwainer's son, whose name was 15 Ralph Wilford ; a young man taught and set on by an Augustin friar, called Patrick. They both from the parts of Suffolk cariie forwards into Kent, where they did not only privily and underhand give out, that this Wilford was the true earl of Warwick, but also the friar, finding some light 20 credence in the people, took the boldness in the pulpit to declare as much, and to incite the people to come in to his aid. Whereupon they were both presently apprehended, and the young fellow executed, and the friar condemned to perpetual imprisonment. This also happening so oppor- 25 tunely, to represent the danger to the King's estate from the earl of Warwick, and thereby to cover the King's severity that followed ; together with the madness of the friar so vainly and desperately to divulge a treason, before it had gotten any manner of strength ; and the saving of the friar's 30 life, which nevertheless was, indeed, but the privilege of his order ; and the pity in the common people, which if it run in a strong stream, doth ever cast up scandal and envy, B. H. 12 178 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1499 made it generally rather talked than believed, that all was but the King's device. But howsoever it were, hereupon Perkin, that had offended against grace now the third time, was at the last proceeded with, and by commissioners of 5 oyer and determiner arraigned at \\'estminster, upon divers treasons committed and perpetrated after his coming on land within this kingdom, for so the judges advised, for that he was a foreigner, and condemned, and a few days after executed at Tyburn ; where he did again openly read his lo confession, and take it upon his death to be true. This was - the end of this little cockatrice of a King, that was able to destroy those that did not espy him first. It was one of the longest plays of that kind that hath been in memory, and might perhaps have had another end, if he had not met with 15 a King both wise, stout, and fortunate. As for Perkin's three counsellors, they had registered themselves sanctuary men when their master did ; and whether upon pardon obtained, or continuance within the privilege, they came not to be proceeded with. 20 There were executed with Perkin, the mayor of Cork and his son, who had been principal abettors of his treasons. And soon after were likewise condemned eight other per- sons about the Tower conspiracy, whereof four were the lieutenant's men : but of those eight but two were executed. 25 And immedi^ely after was arraigned before the Earl of Ox- ford, then for the time high steward of England, the poor Prince, the Earl of Warwick ; not for the attempt to escape simply, for that was not acted ; and besides, the imprison- ment not being for treason, the escape by law could not be 30 treason, but for conspiring with Perkin to raise sedition, and to destroy the King : and the earl confessing the indict- ment, had judgment, and was shortly after beheaded on Tower-hill. 1499] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 179 This was also the end, not only of this noble and corn- miserable person Edward the earl of Warwick, eldest son to the duke of Clarence : but likewise of the hne male of the Plantagenets, which had flourished in great royalty and re- nown, from the time of the famous King of England, King 5 Henry the second. Howbeit it was a race often dipped in their own blood. It hath remained since only transplanted into other names, as well of the imperial line, as of other noble houses. But it was neither guilt of crime, nor treason of state, that could quench the envy that was upon the King 10 for this execution : so that he thought good to export it out of the land, and to lay it upon his new ally, Ferdinando King of Spain. For these two Kings understanding one another at half a word, so it was that there were letters shewed out of Spain, whereby in the passages concerning 15 the treaty of marriage, Ferdinando had written to the King in plain terms, that he saw no assurance of his suc- cession, as long as the earl of Warwick lived; and that he was loth to send his daughter to troubles and dangers. But hereby, as the King did in some part remove the envy 20 from himself; so he did not observe, that he did withal bring a kind of malediction and infausting upon the marriage, as an ill prognostic : which in event so far proved true, as both Prince Arthur enjoyed a very small time after the marriage, and the lady Catharine herself 25 a sad and a religious woman, long after, when King Henry the eighth his resolution of a divorce from her was first made known to her, used some words, that she had not offended, but it was a judgment of God, for that her former marriage was made in blood ; meaning that of the earl of 3° Warwick. This fifteenth year of the King, there was a great plague both in London and in divers parts of the kingdom. 12- i8o HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1499 Wherefore the King, after often change of places, whether to avoid the danger of the sickness, or to give occasion of an interview with the archduke, or both, sailed over with his Queen to Calais. Upon his coming thither, the arch- 5 duke sent an honourable embassage unto him as well to welcome him into those parts, as to let him know, that, if it pleased him, he would come and do him reverence. But it was said withal, that the King might be pleased to appoint some place, that were out of any walled town oi lo fortress, for that he had denied the same upon like occasion to the French King : and though, he said, he made a great difference between the two Kings, yet he would be loth to give a precedent, that might make it after to be expected at his hands, by another whom he trusted less. The King 15 accepted of the courtesy, and admitted of his excuse, and appointed the place to be at Saint Peter's church without Calais. But withal he did visit the archduke with am- bassadors sent from himself, which were tlie lord Saint John, and the secretary ; unto whom the archduke did the 20 honour, as going to mass at Saint Omer's, to set the lord Saint John on his right hand, and the secretary on his left, and so to ride between them to church. The day appointed for the interview the King went on horseback some distance from Saint Peter's church, to receive the 2 c archduke: and upon their approaching, the archduke made haste to light, and offered to hold the King's stirrup at his alighting; which the King would not permit, but descending from horseback, they embraced with great af- fection; and withdrawing into the church to a place pre- 30 pared, they had long conference, not only upon the confirmation of former treaties, and the freeing of com- merce, but upon cross marriages, to be had between the duke of York the King's second son, and the archduke's 1499] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII i8i daughter; and again between Charles the archduke's son and heir, and Mary the King's second daughter. But these blossoms of unripe marriages were but friendly wishes, and the airs of loving entertainment ; though one of them came afterwards to conclusion in treaty, though not in effect. 5 But during the time that the two Princes conversed and communed together in the suburbs of Calais, the demon- strations on both sides were passing hearty and affectionate, especially on the part of the archduke : who, besides that he was a Prince of an excellent good nature, being con- lo scious to himself how drily the King had been used by his council in the matter of Perkin, did strive by all means to recover it in the King's affection. And having also his ears continually beaten with the counsels of his father and father-in-law, who, in respect of their jealous hatred against 15 the French King, did always advise the archduke to anchor himself upon the amity of King Henry of England ; was glad upon this occasion to put in ure and practice their precepts, calling the King patron, and father, and protector, these very words the King repeats, when he certified of 20 the loving behaviour of the archduke to the city, and what else he could devise, to express his love and observance to the King. There came also to the King, the governor of Picardy, and the bailiff of Amiens, sent from Lewis the French King to do him honour, and to give him knowledge 25 of his victory, and winning of the duchy of Milan. It seemeth the King was well pleased with the honours he received from those parts, while he was at Calais ; for he did himself certify all the news and occurrents of them in every particular, from Calais, to the mayor and aldermen 30 of London, which, no doubt, made no small talk in the city. For the King, though he could not entertain the good-will of the citizens, as Edward the fourth did ; yet by i82 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1500 affability and other princely graces did ever make very much of them, and apply himself to them. This year also died John Morton, archbishop of Can- terbury, chancellor of England, and cardinal. He was a 5 wise man, and an eloquent, but in his nature harsh and haughty; much accepted by the King, but envied by the nobility, and hated of the people. Neither was his name left out of Perkin's proclamation for any good will, but they would not bring him in amongst the King's casting ID counters, because he had the image and superscription upon him of the Pope, in his honour of cardinal. He won the King with secrecy and diligence, but chiefly because he was his old servant in his less fortunes : and also for that, in his affections, he was not without an inveterate 15 malice against the house of York, under whom he had been in trouble. He was willing also to take envy from the King, more than the King was willing to put upon him : for the King cared not for subterfuges, but would stand envy, and appear in any thing that was to his mind ; 20 which made envy still grow upon him more universal, but less daring. But in the matter of exactions, time did after shew, that the bishop in feeding the King's humour did rather temper it. He had been by Richard the third committed, as in custody, to the duke of Buckingham, 25 whom he did secretly incite to revolt from King Richard. But after the duke was engaged, and thought the bishop should have been his chief pilot in the tempest, the bishop was gotten into the cock-boat, and fled over beyond seas. But whatsoever else was in the man, he deserveth a most 30 happy memory, in that he was the principal mean of join- ing the two Roses. He died of great years, but of strong health and powers. Th<^ next year, which was the sixteenth year of the 1500] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 183 King, and the year of our Lord one thousand five hundred, was the year of jubile at Rome. But Pope Alexander, to save the hazard and charges of men's journeys to Rome, thought good to make over those graces by exchange, to such as would pay a convenient rate, seeing they 5 could not come to fetch them. For which purpose was sent into England, Jasper Pons, a Spaniard, the Pope's commissioner, better chosen than were the commis- sioners of Pope Leo afterwards employed for Germany : for he carried the business with great wisdom, and sem- 10 blance of holiness : insomuch as he levied great sums of money within this land to the Pope's use, with little or no scandal. It was thought the King shared in the money. But it appeareth by a letter which cardinal Adrian, the King's pensioner, wrote to the King from 15 Rome some few years after, that this was not so. For this cardinal, being to persuade Pope Julius, on the King's behalf, to expedite the bull of dispensation for the mar- riage between Prince Henry and the lady Catharine, finding the Pope difficile in granting thereof, doth use it as a 20 principal argument concerning the King's merit towards that see, that he had touched none of those deniers which had been levied by Pons in England. But tliat it might the better appear, for the satisfaction of the common people, that this was consecrated money, the same nuncio 25 brought unto the King a brief from the Pope, wherein the King was exhorted and summoned to come in person against the Turk : for that the Pope, out of the care of an universal father, seeing almost under his eyes the successes and progresses of that great enemy of the faith, had had 30 in the conclave, and with the assistance of the ambassador, of foreign Princes, divers consultations about an holy war and a general expedition of Christian Princes against the i84 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. [1500 Turk : wherein it was agreed and thought fit, that the Hungarians, Polonians, and Bohemians, should make a war upon Thracia; the French and Spaniards upon Graecia; and that the Pope, wilHng to sacrifice himself in so good a 5 cause, in person and in comi)any of the King of England, the Venetians, and such other states as were great in mari- time power, would sail with a puissant navy through the Mediterranean unto Constantinople. And that to this end, his Holiness had sent nuncios to all Christian Princes ; as lo well for a cessation of all quarrels and differences amongst themselves, as for speedy preparations and contributions of forces and treasure for this sacred enterprise. To this the King, who understood well the court of Rome, made an answer rather solemn than serious : sig- 1 5 nifying, ''That no Prince on earth should be more forward and "obedient, both by his person, and by all his possible forces " and fortunes, to enter into this sacred war, than himself. " But that the distance of place was such, as no forces that 2o "he should raise for the seas, could be levied or prepared " but with double the charge, and double the time at the "least, that they might be from the other Princes, that had " their territories nearer adjoining. Besides, that neither the " manner of his ships, having no galleys, nor the experience 25 "of his pilots and mariners, could be so apt for those seas " as theirs. And therefore that his Holiness might do well " to move one of those other Kings, who lay fitter for the " purpose, to accompany him by sea. Whereby both all ' things would be sooner put in readiness, and with less 30 •' charge, and the emulation and division of command, "which might grow between those Kings of France and "Spain, if they should both join in the war by land upon " Graecia, might be wisely avoided : and that for his part he 1500] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 185 *' would not be wanting in aids and contribution. Yet not- " withstanding, if both these Kings should refuse, rather " than his Holiness should go alone, he would wait upon him " as soon as he could be ready : always provided, that he "might first see all differences of the Christian Princes 5 " amongst themselves fully laid down and appeased, as for " his own part he was in none, and that he might have some "good towns upon the coast in Italy put into his hands, for " the retreat and safeguard of his men." With this answer Jasper Pons returned, nothing at all 10 discontented : and yet this declaration of the King, as super- ficial as it was, gave him that reputation abroad, as he was not long after elected by the knights of Rhodes protector of their order; all things multiplying to honour in a prince, that had gotten such high estimation for his wisdom and 15 sufficiency. There were these two last years some proceedings against heretics, which was rare in this King's reign, and rather by penances, than by fire. The King had, though he were no good schoolman, the honour to convert one of them by 20 dispute at Canterbury. This year also, though the King were no more haunted with sprites, for that by the sprinkling, partly of blood, and partly of water, he had chased them away ; yet nevertheless he had certain apparitions that troubled him, still shewing 25 themselves from one region, which was the house of York. It came so to pass, that the earl of Suffolk, son to Elizabeth eldest sister to King Edward the fourth, by John duke of Suffolk, her second husband, and brother to John earl of Lincoln, that was slain at Stoke-field, being of an hasty and 3° choleric disposition, had killed a man in his fury; whereupon the King gave him his pardon. But, either willing to leave a cloud upon him, or the better to make him feel his grace, 1 86 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1501 produced him openly to plead his pardon. This wrought in the earl, as in a haughty stomach it useth to do ; for the ignominy printed deeper than the grace. Wherefore he being discontent, fled secretly into Flanders unto his aunt 5 the duchess of Burgundy. The King startled at it ; but, being taught by troubles to use fair and timely remedies, wrought so with him by messages, the lady Margaret also growing, by often failing in her alchemy, weary of her ex- periments ; and partly being a little sweetened, for that the lo King had not touched her name in the confession of Perkin, that he came over again upon good terms, and was recon- ciled to the King. In the beginning of the next year, being the seventeenth of the King, the lady Catharine, fourth daughter of Fer- 15 dinando and Isabella, King and Queen of Spain, arrived in England at Plymouth the second of October, and was married to Prince Arthur in Paul's the fourteenth of Novem- ber following : the Prince being then about fifteen years of age, and the lady about eighteen. The manner of her 20 receiving, the manner of her entry into London, and the celebrity of the marriage, were performed with great and true magnificence in regard of cost, shew, and order. The chief man that took the care was bishop Fox, who was not only a grave counsellor for war or peace, but also a good 25 surveyor of works, and a good master of ceremonies, and any thing else that was fit for the active part, belonging to the service of the court or state of a great King. This marriage was almost seven years in treaty, which was in part caused by the tender years of the marriage-couple, 30 especially of the Prince; but the true reason was, that these two Princes, being Princes of great policy and profound judgment, stood a great time looking one upon another's fortunes, how they would go ; knowing well, that in the 1501] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 187 mean time the very treaty itself gave abroad in the world a reputation of a strait conjunction and amity between them, which served on both sides to many purposes, that their several affairs required, and yet they continued still free. But in the end, when the fortunes of both the Princes 5 did grow every day more and more prosperous and assured, and that looking all about them, they saw no better con- ditions, they shut it up. The marriage money the Princess brought, which was turned over to the King by act of renunciation, was two 10 hundred thousand ducats : whereof one hundred thousand were payable ten days after the solemnization, and the other hundred thousand at two payments annual; but part of it to be in jewels and plate, and a due course set down to have them justly and indifferently prized. The jointure or advance- 15 ment of the lady, was the third part of the principality of Wales, and of the dukedom of Cornwall, and of the earldom of Chester, to be after set forth in severalty : and in case she came to be Queen of England, her advancement was left indefinite, but thus; that it should be as great as ever any 20 former Queen of England had. In all the devices and conceits of the triumphs of this marriage, there was a great deal of astronomy : the lady being resembled to Hesperus, and the Prince to Arcturus, and the old King Alphonsus, that was the greatest astro- 25 nomer of Kings, and was ancestor to the lady, was brought in, to be the fortune-teller of the match. And whosoever had those toys in compiling, they were not altogether pe- dantical: but you may be sure, that King Arthur the Britain, and the descent of the lady Catharine from the house of 30 Lancaster, was in no wise forgotten. But, as it should seem, it is not good to fetch fortunes from the stars : for this young Prince, that drew upon him at that time, not i88 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [150| only the hopes and affections of his country, but the eyes and expectation of foreigners, after a few months, in the beginning of April, deceased at Ludlow Castle, where he was sent to keep his resiance and court, as Prince of Wales. 5 Of this Prince, in respect he died so young, and by reason of his father's manner of education, that did cast no great lustre upon his children, there is little particular memory : only thus much remaineth, that he was very studious and learned beyond his years, and beyond the custom of great lo Princes. The February following, Henry duke of York was created Prince of Wales, and earl of Chester and Flint : for the dukedom of Cornwall devolved to him by statute. The King also being fast-handed, and loth to part with a 15 second dowry, but chiefly being affectionate both by his nature, and out of politic considerations to continue the alliance with Spain, prevailed with the Prince, though not without some reluctation, such as could be in those years, for he was not twelve years of age, to be contracted with 20 the Princess Catharine : The secret providence of God or- daining that marriage to be the occasion of great events and changes. The same year were the espousals of James King of Scotland with the lady Margaret the King's eldest daughter; 25 which was done by proxy, and published at Paul's cross the five and twentieth of January, and Te Deum solemnly sung. But certain it is, that the joy of the city thereupon shewed, by ringing of bells and bonfires, and such other incense of the people, was more than could be expected, 30 in a case of so great and fresh enmity between the nations, especially in London, which was far enough off from feeling any of the former calamities of the war : and therefore might be truly attributed to a secret instinct and inspiring, 1503] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 189 which many times runneth not only in the hearts of Princes, but in the pulse and veins of people, toucHing the happiness thereby to ensue in time to come. This marriage was in August following consummated at Edinburgh : the King bringing his daughter as far as Colliweston on the way, 5 and then consigning her to the attendance of the earl of Northumberland; who with a great troop of lords and ladies of honour brought her into Scotland, to the King her husband. This marriage had been in treaty by the space of almost to three years, from the time that the King of Scotland did first open his mind to bishop Fox. The sum given in marriage by the King, was ten thousand pounds : and the jointure and advancement assured by the King of Scotland, was two thousand pounds a year, after King James his 15 death, and one thousand pounds a year in present, for the lady's allowance or maintenance. This to be set forth in lands, of the best and most certain revenue. During the treaty, it is reported, that the King remitted the matter to his council ; and that some of the table, in the freedom 20 of counsellors, the King being present, did put the case ; that if God should take the King's two sons without issue, that then the kingdom of England would fall to the King of Scotland, which might prejudice the monarchy of Eng- land. Whereunto the King himself replied ; that if that 25 should be, Scotland would be but an accession to England, and not England to Scotland, for that the greater would draw the less : and that it was a safer union for England than that of France. This passed as an oracle, and silenced those that moved the question. 30 The same year was fatal, as well for deaths as mar- riages, and that with equal temper. For the joys and feasts of the two marriages were compensed with the mournings iQo HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1503 and funerals of Prince Arthur, of whom we have spoken, and of Queen Elizabeth, who died in child-bed in the Tower, and the child lived not long after. There died also that year Sir Reginald Bray, who was noted to have had 5 with the King the greatest freedom of any counsellor ; but it was but a freedom the better to set off flattery. Yet he bare more than his just part of envy for the exactions. At this time the King's estate was very prosperous; secured by the amity of Scotland, strengthened by that of ^° Spain, cherished by that of Burgundy, all domestic troubles quenched, and all noise of war, like a thunder afar off, going upon Italy. Wherefore nature, which many times is happily contained and refrained by some bands of for- tune, began to take place in the King; carrying, as with 15 a strong tide, his affections and thoughts unto the gathering and heaping up of treasure. And as Kings do more easily find instruments for their will and humour, than for their service and honour ; he had gotten for his purpose, or beyond his purpose, two instruments, Empson and Dudley, 20 whom the people esteemed as his horse-leeches and shearers, bold men and careless of fame, and that took toll of their master's grist. Dudley was of a good family, eloquent, and one that could put hateful business into good language. But Empson, that was the son of a sieve-maker, triumphed 25 always upon the deed done, putting off all other respects whatsoever. These two persons being lawyers in science, and privy counsellors in authority, as the corruption of the best things is the worst, turned law and justice into worm- wood rapine. For first, their manner was to cause divers Z^ subjects to be indicted of sundry crimes, and so far forth to proceed in form of law ; but when the bills were found, then presently to commit them : and nevertheless not to produce them in any reasonable time to their answer, but 1503] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 191 to suffer them to languish long in prison, and by sundry artificial devices and terrors to extort from them great fines and ransoms, which they termed compositions and mitigations. Neither did they, towards the end, observe so much as 5 the half-face of justice, in proceeding by indictment ; but sent forth their precepts to attach men and convent them before themselves, and some others, at their private houses, in a court of commission ; and there used to shuffle up a summary proceeding by examination, without trial of jury; 10 assuming to themselves there, to deal both in pleas of the crown, and controversies civil. Then did they also use to enthral and charge the sub- jects' lands with tenures in capite, by finding false offices, and thereby to work upon them for wardships, liveries^ pre- 15 mier seisins, and alienations, being the fruits of those tenures, refusing, upon divers pretexts and delays, to admit men to traverse those false offices, according to the law. Nay, the King's wards, after they had accomplished their full age, could not be suffered to have livery of their lands, without 20 paying excessive fines, far exceeding all reasonable rates. They did also vex men with informations of intrusion, upon scarce colourable titles. When men were outlawed in personal actions, they would not permit them to purchase their charters of pardon, 25 except they paid great and intolerable sums ; standing upon the strict point of law, which upon outlawries giveth for- feiture of goods : nay, contrary to all law and colour, they maintained the King ought to have the half of men's lands and rents, during the space of full two years, for a pain in 30 case of outlawry. They would also ruffle with jurors, and inforce them to find as they would direct, and, if they did not, convent them, imprison them, and fine them. 192 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. [1503 These and many other courses, fitter to be buried than repeated, they had of preying upon the people ; both Hke tame hawks for their master, and hke wild hawks for them- selves; insomuch as they grew to great riches and substance: 5 but their principal working was upon penal laws, wherein they spared none, great nor small ; nor considered whether the law were possible or impossible, in use or obsolete : but raked over all old and new statutes, though many of them were made with intention rather of terror than of rigour, lo having ever a rabble of promoters, questmongers, and lead- ing jurors at their command, so as they could have any thing found either for fact or valuation. There remaineth to this day a report, that the King was on a time entertained by the earl of Oxford, that was his 15 principal servant both for war and peace, nobly and sump- tuously, at his castle at Henningham. And at the King's going away, the earl's servants stood, in a seemly manner, in their livery coats, with cognisances, ranged on both sides, and made the King a lane. The King called the earl to 20 him, and said, " My lord, I have heard much of your hos- " pitality, but I see it is greater than the speech : These "handsome gentlemen and yeomen, which I see on both "sides of me, are sure your menial servants." The earl smiled, and said, " It may please your grace, that were not 25 " for mine ease : they are most of them my retainers, that "are come to do me service at such a time as this, and " chiefly to see your grace." The King started a little, and said, " By my faith, my lord, I thank you for my good "cheer, but I may not endure to have my laws broken in 30 " my sight : my attorney must speak with you." And it is part of the report, that the earl compounded for no less than fifteen thousand marks. And to shew farther the King's extreme diligence, I do remember to have seen long 1503] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL 193 since a book of acconipt of Empson's, that had the King's hand almost to every leaf, by way of signing, and was in some places postilled in the margin with the King's hand likewise, where was this remembrance. " Item, Received of such a one, five marks, for a pardon 5 " to be procured ; and if the pardon do not pass, the " money to be repaid ; except the party be some " other ways satisfied." And over against this Memorandum, of the King's own hand, " Otherwise satisfied." 1° Which I do the rather mention, because it shews in the King a nearness, but yet with a kind of justness. So these little sands and grains of gold and silver, as it seemeth, helped not a httle to make up the great heap and bank. But meanwhile, to keep the King awake, the earl of 1 5 Suffolk, having been too gay at Prince Arthur's marriage, and sunk himself deep in debt, had yet once more a mind to be a knight-errant, and to seek adventures in foreign parts ; and taking his brother with him, fled again into Flanders. That, no doubt, which gave him confidence, was 20 the great murmur of the people against the King's govern- ment : and being a man of a light and rash spirit, he thought every vapour would be a tempest. Neither wanted he some party within the kingdom : for the murmur of people awakes the discontents of nobles; and again, that calleth up com- 25 monly some head of sedition. The King resorting to his wonted and tried arts, caused Sir Robert Curson, captain of the castle at Hammes, being at that time beyond sea, and therefore less likely to be wrought upon by the King, to fly from his charge, and to feign himself a servant of the earl's. 30 This knight, having insinuated himself into the secrets of the earl, and finding by him upon whom chiefly he had B. H. 13 T94 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1503 either hope or hold, advertised the King thereof in great secrecy: but nevertheless maintained his own credit and in- ward trust with the earl. Upon whose advertisements, the King attached William Courtney earl of Devonshire, his 5 brother-in-law, married to the lady Catharine, daughter to King Edward the fourth; William de la Pole, brother to the earl of Suffolk; Sir James Tirrel, and Sir John Windham, and some other meaner persons, and committed them to custody. George lord Abergavenny, and Sir Thomas Green, 10 were at the same time apprehended; but as upon less sus- picion, so in a freer restraint, and were soon after delivered. The earl of Devonshire being interested in the blood of York, that was rather feared than nocent ; yet as one that might be the object of others' plots and designs, remained r 5 prisoner in the Tower, during the King's life. William de la Pole was also long restrained, though not so straitly. But for Sir James Tirrel, against whom the blood of the innocent Princes, Edward the fifth and his brother, did still cry fro??i wider the altar, and Sir John Windham, and the other 2o meaner ones, they were attainted and executed ; the two knights beheaded. Nevertheless, to confirm the credit of Curson, who belike had not yet done all his feats of activity, there was published at Paul's cross, about the time of the said executions, the Pope's bull of excommunication and 25 curse against the earl of Suffolk and Sir Robert Curson, and some others by name; and likewise in general against all the abettors of the said earl : wherein it must be confessed, that heaven was made too much to bow to earth, and re- ligion to policy. But soon after, Curson, when he saw 30 time, returned into England, and withal into wonted favour with the King, but worse fame with the people. Upon whose return the earl was much dismayed, and seeing him- self destitute of hopes, the lady Margaret also, by tract of 150f] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 195 time and bad success, being now become cool in those at- tempts, after some wandering in France and Germany, and certain little projects, no better than squibs of an exiled man, being tired out, retired again into the protection of the archduke PhiHp in Flanders, who by the death of Isabella 5 was at that time King of Castile, in the right of Joan his wife. This year, being the nineteenth of his reign, the King called his parliament : wherein a man may easily guess how absolute the King took himself to be with his parlia- 10 ment, when Dudley, that was so hateful, was made speaker of the house of commons. In this parliament there were not made any statutes memorable touching public govern- ment. But those that were, had still the stamp of the King's wisdom and policy. 1 5 There was a statute made for the disannulling of all patents of lease or grant, to such as came not upon lawful summons to serve the King in his wars, against the enemies or rebels, or that should depart without the King's licence; with an exception of certain persons of the long robe : 20 providing nevertheless, that they should have the King's wages from their house, till their return home again. There had been the like made before for offices, and by this statute it was extended to lands. But a man may easily see by many statutes made in this King's time, that the 25 King thought it safest to assist martial law by law of parliament. Another statute was made, prohibiting the bringing in of manufactures of silk wrought by itself, or mixt with any other thread. But it was not of stuffs of whole piece, for 30 that the realm had of them no manufacture in use at that time, but of knit silk or texture of silk; as ribbons, laces, cauls, points, and girdles, &c. which the people of England 1,3 — 2 196 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [150f could then well skill to make. This law pointed at a true principle ; " That where foreign materials are but super- " fluities, foreign manufactures should be prohibited." For that will either banish the superfluity, or gain the manu- 5 facture. There was a law also of resumption of patents of gaols, and the reannexing of them to the sheriffwicks; privileged officers being no less an interruption of justice, than pri- vileged places. 10 There was likewise a law to restrain the by-laws, or ordinances of corporations ; which many times were against the prerogative of the King, the common law of the realm, and the liberty of the subject, being fraternities in evil. It was therefore provided, that they should not be put in 15 execution, without the allowance of the chancellor, treasurer, and the two chief justices, or three of them, or of the two justices of circuit where the corporation was. Another law was, in effect, to bring in the silver of the realm to the mint, in making all clipped, minished, or im- 20 paired coins of silver, not to be current in payments ; with- out giving any remedy of weight, but with an exception only of reasonable wearing, which was as nothing in respect of the uncertainty ; and so, upon the matter, to set the mint on work, and to give way to new coins of silver, which 25 should be then minted. There likewise was a long statute against vagabonds, wherein two things may be noted ; the one, the dislike the parliament had of gaoling of them, as that which was charge- able, pesterous, and of no open example. The other, that 30 in the statutes of this King's time, for this of the nineteenth year is not the only statute of that kind, there are ever coupled the punishment of vagabonds, and the forbidding of dice and cards, and unlawful games, unto servants and 1504] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL 197 mean people, and the putting down and suppressing of alehouses, as strings of one root together, and as if the one were unprofitable without the other. As for riot and retainers, there passed scarce any par- liament in this time without a law against them ; the King 5 ever having an eye to might and multitude. There was granted also that parliament a subsidy, both from the temporality and the clergy. And yet nevertheless, ere the year expired, there went out commissions for a general benevolence, though there were no wars, no fears. 10 The same year the city gave five thousand marks, for con- firmation of their liberties ; a thing fitter for the beginnings of Kings' reigns, than the latter ends. Neither was it a small matter that the mint gained upon the late statute, by the recoinage of groats and half-groats, now twelve- 15 pences and six-pences. As for Empson and Dudley's mills, they did grind more than ever: so that it was a strange thing to see what golden showers poured down upon the King's treasury at once: the last payments of the mar- riage-money from Spain; the subsidy; the benevolence ; 20 the recoinage; the redemption of the city's liberties; the casualties. And this is the more to be marvelled at, be- cause the King had then no occasions at all of wars or troubles. He had now but one son, and one daughter unbestowed. He was wise ; he was of an high mind ; he 25 needed not to make riches his glory ; he did excel in so many things else; save that certainly avarice doth ever find in itself matter of ambition. Belike he thought to leave his son such a kingdom, and such a mass of treasure, as he mi^ht choose his greatness where he would. 30 This year was also kept the Serjeants' feast, which was the second call in this King's days. About this time Isabella Queen of Castile deceased : 198 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1504 a right noble lady, and an honour to her sex and times, and the corner-stone of the greatness of Spain that hath followed. This accident the King took not for news at large, but thought it had a great relation to his own affairs; c especially in two points : the one for example, the other for consequence. First, he conceived that the case of Ferdinando of Aragon, after the death of Queen Isabella, was his own case after the death of his own Queen ; and the case of Joan the heir unto Castile, was the case of his lo own son Prince Henry. For if both of the Kings had their kingdoms in the right of their wives, they descended to the heirs, and did not accrue to the husbands. And although his own case had both steel and parchment, more than the other, that is to say, a conquest in the le field, and an act of parliament, yet notwithstanding, that natural title of descent in blood did, in the imagination even of a wise man, breed a doubt, that the other two were not safe nor sufficient. Wherefore he was wonderful diligent to inquire and observe what became of the King 20 of Aragon, in holding and continuing the kingdom of Castile ; and whether he did hold it in his own right ; or as administrator to his daughter; and whether he were like to hold it in fact, or to be put out by his son-in-law. Secondly, be did revolve in his mind, that the state of 25 Christendom might by this late accident have a turn. For whereas before time, himself, with the conjunction of Aragon and Castile, which then was one, and the amity of Maximilian and Philip his son the archduke, was far too strong a party for France ; he began to fear, that now 30 the French King, who had great interest in the affections of Philip the young King of Castile, and Philip himself, now King of Castile, who was in ill terms with his father- in-law about the present government of Castile, and thirdly, 1504] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 199 Maximilian, Philip's father, who was ever variable, and upon whom the surest aim that could be taken was, that he would not be long as he had been last before, would, all three being potent Princes, enter into some strait league and confederation amongst themselves : whereby though 5 he should not be endangered, yet he should be left to the poor amity of Aragon. And whereas he had been here- tofore a kind of arbiter of Europe, he should now go less, and be over-topped by so great a conjunction. He had also, as it seems, an inclination to marry, and bethought 10 himself of some fit conditions abroad : and amongst others he had heard of the beauty and virtuous behaviour of the young Queen of Naples, the widow of Ferdinando the younger, being then of matronal years of seven and twenty: by whose marriage he thought that the kingdom of Naples, 15 having been a goal for a time between the King of Aragon and the French King, and being but newly settled, might in some part be deposited in his hands, who was so able to keep the stakes. Therefore he sent in embassage or message three confident persons, Francis Marsin, James 20 Braybrooke, and John Stile, upon two several inquisitions rather than negotiations. The one touching the person and condition of the young Queen of Naples. The other touching all particulars of estate, that concerned the for- tunes and intentions of Ferdinando. And because they 25 may observe best, who tliemselves are observed least, he sent them under colourable pretexts ; giving them letters of kindness and compliment from Catharine the Princess, to her aunt and niece, the old and young Queen of Naples, and delivering to them also a book of new articles of peace; 30 which notwithstanding it had been delivered unto doctor de Puebla, the lieger ambassador of Spain here in England, to be sent; yet for that the King had been long without 200 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. [1504 hearing from Spain, he thought good those messengers, when they had been with the two Queens, should Hke- wise pass on to the court of Ferdinando, and take a copy of the book with them. The instructions touching the c Queen of Naples were so curious and exquisite, being as articles whereby to direct a survey, or framing a parti- cular of her person, for complexion, favour, feature, stature, health, age, customs, behaviour, conditions, and estate, as, if the King had been young, a man would have judged lo him to be amorous; but, being ancient, it ought to be interpreted, that sure he was very chaste, for that he meant to find all things in one woman, and so to settle his affec- tions without ranging. But in this match he was soon cooled, when he heard from his ambassadors, that this r5 young Queen had had a goodly jointure in the realm of Naples, well answered -during the time of her uncle Frederick, yea and during the time of Lewis the French King, in whose division her revenue fell ; but since the time that the kingdom was in Ferdinando's hands, all was 20 assigned to the army and garrisons there, and she received only a pension or exhibition out of his coffers. The other part of the inquiry had a grave and diligent return, informing the King at full of the present state of King Ferdinando. By this report it appeared to the King, 25 that Ferdinando did continue the government of Castile, as administrator unto his daughter Joan, by the title of Queen Isabella's will, and partly by the custom of the kingdom, as he pretended. And that all mandates and grants were ex- pedited in the name of Joan his daughter, and himself as 30 administrator, without mention of Philip her husband. And that King Ferdinando, howsoever he did dismiss himself of the name of King of Castile, yet meant to hold the kingdom without account, and in absolute command. 1504] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 201 It appeareth also, that he flattered himself with hopes, that King Philip would permit unto him the government of Castile during his life ; which he had laid his plot to work him unto, both by some counsellors of his about him, which Ferdinando had at his devotion, and chiefly by promise, that 5 in case Philip gave not way unto it, he would marry some young lady, whereby to put him by the succession of Aragon and Granada, in case he should have a son ; and lastly, by representing unto him that the government of the Burgun- dians, till Philip were by continuance in Spain made as 10 natural of Spain, would not be endured by the Spaniards. But in all those things, though wisely laid down and con- sidered, Ferdinando foiled ; but that Pluto was better to him than Pallas. In the same report also, the ambassadors being mean 15 men, and therefore the more free, did strike upon a string which was somewhat dangerous ; for they declared plainly, that the people of Spain, both nobles and commons, were better affected unto the part of Philip, so he brought his wife with him, than to Ferdinando; and expressed the reason 20 to be, because he had imposed upon them many taxes and tallages ; which was the King's own case between him and his son. There was also in this report a declaration of an over- ture of marriage, which Amason the secretary of Ferdinando 25 had made unto the ambassadors in great secret, between Charles Prince of Castile and Mary the King's second daughter; assuring the King, that the treaty of marriage then on foot for the said Prince and the daughter of France, would break : and that she the said daughter of France 30 should be married to Angolesme, that was the heir apparent of France. There was a touch also of a speech of marriage between 202 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. [150J Ferdinando and Madame de Fois, a lady of the blood of France, which afterwards indeed succeeded. But this was reported as learned in France, and silenced in Spain. The King by the return of this embassage, which gave 5 great light unto his affairs, was well instructed, and pre- pared how to carry himself between Ferdinando King of Aragon and Philip his son-in-law King of Castile ; resolving with himself to do all that in him lay, to keep them at one within themselves; but howsoever that succeeded, by amode- To rate carriage, and bearing the person of a common friend, to lose neither of their friendships ; but yet to run a course more entire with the King of Aragon, but more laboured and officious with the King of Castile. But he was much taken with the overture of marriage with his daughter Mary ; both 15 because it was the greatest marriage of Christendom, and for that it took hold of both allies. But to corroborate his alliance with Philip, the \vinds gave him an interview : for Philip choosing the winter sea- son, the better to surprise the King of Aragon, set forth 20 with a great navy out of Flanders for Spain, in the month of January, the one and twentieth year of the King's reign. But himself was surprised with a cruel tempest, that scat- tered his ships upon the several coasts of England. And the ship wherein the King and Queen were, with two other 25 small barks only, torn and in great peril, to escape the fury of the weather thrust into Weymouth. King Philip himself, having not been used, as it seems, to sea, all wearied and extreme sick, would needs land to refresh his spirits, though it was against the opinion of his council, doubting it might 30 breed delay, his occasions requiring celerity. The rumour of the arrival of a puissant navy upon the coast, made the country arm. And Sir Thomas Trenchard, with forces suddenly raised, not knowing what the matter 150 J] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 203 might be, came to Weymouth. Where understanding the accident, he did in all humbleness and humanity invite the King and Queen to his house; and forthwith despatched posts to the court. Soon after came Sir John Carew like- wise, with a great troop of men well armed ; using the like 5 humbleness and respects towards the King, when he knew the case. King Philip doubting that they, being but sub- jects, durst not let him pass away again without the King's notice and leave, yielded to their intreaties to stay till they heard from the court. The King, as soon as he heard the 10 news, commanded presently the earl of Arundel to go to visit the King of Castile, and let him understand that as he was sorry for his mishap, so he was glad that he had escaped the danger of the seas, and likewise of the occasion himself had to do him honour; and desiring him to think himself 15 as in his own land ; and that the King made all haste pos- sible to come and embrace him. The earl came to him in great magnificence, with a brave troop of three hundred horse ; and, for more state, came by torch-light. After he had done the King's message, King Philip seeing how the 20 world went, the sooner to get away, went upon speed to the King at Windsor, and his Queen followed by easy journeys. The two Kings at their meeting used all the caresses and loving demonstrations that were possible. And the King of Castile said pleasantly to the King, "that he was now pun- 25 " ished for that he would not come within his walled town " of Calais, when they met last." But tlie King answered, " that walls and seas were nothing where hearts were open ; "and that he was here no otherwise but to be served." After a day or two's refreshing, the Kings entered into 30 speech of renewing the treaty ; the King saying, that though King Philip's person were the same, yet his fortunes and state were raised : in which case a renovation of treaty was 204 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [150^ used amongst Princes. But while these things were in handling, the King choosing a fit time, and drawing the King of Castile into a room, where they two only were private, and laying his hand civilly upon his arm, and 5 changing his countenance a little from a countenance of en tertainment, said to him, " Sir, you have been saved upon my "coast, I hope you will not suffer me to wreck upon yours." The King of Castile asked him, "what he meant by that " speech ?" " I mean it," saith the King, "by that same hare- 10 " brain wild fellow, my subject, the earl of Suffolk, who is pro- " tected in your country, and begins to play the fool, when " all others are weary of it." The King of Castile answered, " I had thought. Sir, your felicity had been above those " thoughts : but, if it trouble you, I will banish him." The 1 5 King replied, " those hornets were best in their nest, and " worst when they did fly abroad ; and that his desire was "to have him delivered to him." The King of Castile herewith a little confused, and in a study, said, "That can I " not do with my honour, and less with yours ; for you will 20 "be thought to have used me as a prisoner." The King presently said, " Then the matter is at an end : for I will " take that dishonour upon me, and so your honour is " saved." The King of Castile, who had the King in great estimation, and besides remembered where he was, and 25 knew not what use he might have of the King's amity, for that himself was new in his estate of Spain, and unsettled both with his fcither-in-law and with his people, composing his countenance, said, " Sir, you give law to me, but so will " I to you. You shall have him, but, upon your honour, 30 " you shall not take his life." The King embracing him, said, " Agreed." Saith the King of Castile, " Neither shall " it dislike you, if I send to him in such a fashion, as he " may partly come with his own good will." The King said, 150f] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 205 "It was well thought of; and if it pleased him, he would "join with him, in sending to the earl a message to that " purpose." They both sent severally, and mean while they continued feasting and pastimes. The King being, on his part, willing to have the earl sure before the King of Castile 5 went ; and the King of Castile, being as wiUing to seem to be enforced. The King also, with many wise and excellent persuasions, did advise the King of Castile to be ruled by the counsel of his father-in-law Ferdinando ; a Prince so prudent, so experienced, so fortunate. The King of Castile 1 o who was in no very good terms with his said father-in-law, answered, "That if his father-in-law would suffer him to "govern his kingdoms, he should govern him." There were immediately messengers sent from both Kings, to recall the earl of Suffolk ; who upon gentle words 15 used to him was soon charmed, and willing enough to re- turn ; assured of his life, and hoping of his liberty. He was brought through Flanders to Calais, and thence landed at Dover, and with sufficient guard delivered and received at the Tower of London. Meanwhile King Henry, to draw 20 out the time, continued his feastings and entertainments, and after he had received the King of Castile into the fra- ternity of the Garter, and for a reciprocal had his son the Prince admitted to the order of the Golden Fleece, he accompanied King Philip and his Queen to the city of 25 London; where they were entertained with the greatest magnificence and triumph, that could be upon no greater warning. And as soon as the earl of Suftblk had been con- veyed to the Tower, which was the serious part, the jollities had an end, and the Kings took leave. Nevertheless during 30 their being here, they in substance concluded that treaty, which the Flemings term intercursus mains, and bears date at Windsor; for there be some things in it, more to the 2o6 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1506 advantage of the English, than of them ; especially, for that the free-fishing of the Dutch upon the coasts and seas of England, granted in the treaty of undecimo, was not by this treaty confirmed. All articles that confirm former treaties 5 being precisely and warily limited and confirmed to matter of commerce only, and not otherwise. It was observed, that the great tempest which drove Philip into England, blew down the golden eagle from the spire of Paul's, and in the fall it fell upon a sign of the lo black eagle, which was in Paul's church-yard, in the place where the school-house now standeth, and battered it, and brake it down : \vhich was a strange stooping of a hawk upon a fowl. This the people interpreted to be an ominous ])rognostic upon the imperial house, which was, by intcr- 15 pretation also, fulfilled upon Philip the emperor's son, not only in the present disaster of the tempest, but in that that followed. For Philip arriving into Spain, and attaining the possession of the kingdom of Castile without resistance, in- somuch as Ferdinando, who had spoke so great before, was 20 with difticulty admitted to the speech of his son-in-law, sickened soon after, and deceased. Yet after such time, as there was an observation by the wisest of that court, that if he had lived, his father would have gained upon him in that sort, as he would have governed his counsels and designs, 25 if not his affections. By this all Spain returned into the power of Ferdinando in state as it was before ; the rather, in regard of the infirmity of Joan his daughter, who loving her husband, by whom she had many children, dearly well, and no less beloved of him, howsoever her father, to make 30 Philip ill-beloved of the people of Spain, gave out that Philip used her not well, was unable in strength of mind to bear the grief of his decease, and fell distracted of her wits. Of which malady her father was thought no ways to en- 1506] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI 1. 207 deavour the cure, the better to hold his regal power in Castile. So that as the felicity of Charles the eighth was said to be a dream ; so the adversity of Ferdinando was said likewise to be a dream, it passed over so soon. About this time the King was desirous to bring into the 5 house of Lancaster celestial honour, and became suitor to Pope Julius, to canonise King Henry the sixth for a saint; the rather, in respect of that his famous prediction of the King's own assumption to the crown. Julius referred the matter, as the manner is, to certain cardinals, to take the 10 verification of his holy acts and miracles : but it died under the reference. The general opinion was, that Pope Julius was too dear, and that the King would not come to his rates. But it is more probable, that that Pope, who was extremely jealous of the dignity of the see of Rome, and of 1 5 the acts thereof, knowing that King Heniy the sixth was reputed in the world abroad but for a simple man, was afraid it would but diminish the estimation of that kind of honour, if there were not a distance kept between innocents and saints. 20 The same year likewise there proceeded a treaty of mar- riage between the King and the lady Margaret duchess dowager of Savoy, only daughter to Maximilian, and sister to the King of Castile ; a lady wise, and of great good fame. This matter had been in speech between the two Kings at 25 their meeting, but was soon after resumed ; and therein was employed for his first piece the King's then chaplain, and after the great prelate, Thomas Wolsey. It was in the end concluded, with great and ample conditions for the King, but with promise de futuro only. It may be the King was 30 the rather induced unto it, for that he heard more and more of the marriage to go on between his great friend and ally Ferdinando of Aragon, and Madame de Fois, whereby that 2o8 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII [1506 King began to piece with the French King, from whom he had been always before severed. So fatal a thing it is, for the greatest and straitest amities of Kings at one time or other, to have a little of the wheel : nay, there is a farther 5 tradition in Spain, though not with us, that the King of Aragon, after he knew that the marriage between Charles the young Prince of Castile and Mary the King's second daughter went roundly on, which though it was first moved by the King of Aragon, yet it was afterwards wholly ad- To vanced and brought to perfection by Maximilian, and the friends on that side, entered into a jealousy, that the King did aspire to the government of Castilia, as administrator during the minority of his son-in-law ; as if there should have been a competition of three for that government ; 15 Ferdinando, grandfather on the mother's side; Maximilian, grandfather on the father's side ; and King Henry, father- in-law to the young Prince. Certainly it is not unlike, but the King's government, carrying the young prince with him, would have been perhaps more welcome to the Spaniards 20 than that of the other two. For the nobility of Castilia, that so lately put out the King of Aragon in favour of King Philip, and had discovered themselves so far, could not be but in a secret distrust and distaste of that King. And as for Maximilian, upon twenty respects he could not have 25 been the man. But this purpose of the King's seemeth to me, considering the King's safe courses, never found to be enterprising or adventurous, not greatly probable, except he should have had a desire to breathe warmer, because he had ill lungs. This marriage with Margaret was protracted from 30 time to time, in respect of the infirmity of the King, who now in the two and twentieth of his reign began to be troubled with the gout : but the defluxion taking also into his breast, wasted his lungs, so that thrice in a year, in a 1507] niSrORV of king henry VIL 209 kind of return, and especially in the spring, he had great fits and labours of the phthisic : nevertheless, he continued to intend business with as great diligence, as before in his health: yet so, as upon this warning he did hkewise now more seriously think of the world to come, and of making 5 himself a saint, as well as King Henry the sixth, by treasure better employed, than to be given to Pope Julius : for this year he gave greater alms than accustomed, and discharged all prisoners about the city, that lay for fees or debts under forty shillings. He did also make haste with religious foun- 10 dations ; and in the year following, which was the three and twentieth, finished that of the Savoy. And hearing also of the bitter cries of his people against the oppressions of Dudley and Empson, and their complices ; partly by devout persons about him, and partly by public sermons, the 15 preachers doing their duty therein, he • was touched with great remorse for the same. Nevertheless Empson and Dudley, though they could not but hear of these scruples in the King's conscience ; yet, as if the King's soul and his money were in several offices, that the one was not to inter- 20 meddle with the other, went on with as great rage as ever. For the same three and twentieth year was there a shar^) prosecution against Sir William Capel now the second time; and this was for matters of misgovernment in his mayoralty : the greater matter being, that in some payments he had 25 taken knowledge of false moneys, and did not his diligence to examine and beat it out, who were the offenders. For this and some other things laid to his charge, he was con- demned to pay two thousand pounds ; and being a man of stomach, and hardened by his former troubles, refused to 30 pay a mite ; and belike used some untoward speeches of the proceedings, for which he was sent to the Tower, and there remained till the King's death. Knes worth likewise, B. H 14 210 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL [1508 that had been lately mayor of London, and both his sheriffs, were for abuses in their offices questioned, and imprisoned, and delivered, upon one thousand four hundred pounds paid. Havvis, an alderman of London, was put in trouble, 5 and died with thought and anguish, before his business came to an end. Sir Lawrence Ailmer, who had likewise been mayor of London, and his two sheriffs, were put to the fine of one thousand pounds. And Sir Lawrence, for refusing to make payment, was committed to prison, where 10 he stayed till Empson himself was committed in his place. It is no marvel, if the faults were so light, and the rates so heavy, that the King's treasure of store, that he left at his death, most of it in secret places, under his own key and keeping, at Richmond, amounted, as by tradition it is re- 15 ported to have done, unto the sum of near eighteen hundred thousand pounds sterling ; a huge mass of money even for these times. The last act of state that concluded this King's temporal felicity, was the conclusion of a glorious match between his 20 daughter Mary, and Charles Prince of Castile, afterwards the great emperor, botli being of tender years : which treaty was perfected by bishop Fox, and other his commissioners at Calais, the year before the King's death. In which alli- ance, it seemeth, he himself took so high contentment, as in 25 a letter which he wrote thereupon to the city of London, commanding all possible demonstrations of joy to be made for the same, he expresseth himself, as if he thought he had built a wall of brass about his kingdom : when he had for his sons-in-law, a King of Scotland, and a prince of Castile 30 and Burgundy. So as now there was nothing to be added to this great King's felicity, being at the top of all worldly bliss, in regard of the high marriages of his children, his great renown throughout Europe, and his scarce credible 1509] HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 211 riches, and the perpetual constancy of his prosperous suc- cesses, but an opportune death, to withdraw him from any future blow of fortune : which certainly (in regard of the great hatred of his people, and the title of his son, being then come to eighteen years of age, and being a bold Prince 5 and liberal, and that gained upon the people by his very aspect and presence) had not been impossible to have come upon him. To crown also the last year of his reign, as well as his first, he did an act of piety, rare, and worthy to be taken 10 into imitation. For he granted forth a general pardon : as expecting a second coronation in a better kingdom. He did also declare in his will, that his mind was, that restitu- tion should be made of those sums which had been unjustly taken by his officers. 15 And thus this Solomon of England, for Solomon also was too heavy upon his people in exactions, having lived two and fifty years, and thereof reigned three and twenty years, and eight months, being in perfect memory, and in a most blessed mind, in a great calm of a consuming sick- 20 ness passed to a better world, the two and twentieth of April 1508, at his palace of Richmond, which himself had built. THIS King, to speak of him in terms equal to his deserving, was one of the best sort of wonders ; a wonder 25 for wise men. He had parts, both in his virtues and his fortune, not so fit for a common-place, as for observation. Certainly he was religious, both in his afi"ection and ob- servance. But as he could see clear, for those times, through superstition, so he would be blinded, now and 30 then, by human policy. He advanced churchmen; he was tender in the privilege of sanctuaries, though they 14—2 212 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VJI. wrought him much mischief. He built and endowed many rehgious foundations, besides his memorable hospital of the Savoy: and yet was he a great almsgiver in secret; which shewed, that his works in public were dedicated 5 rather to God's glory than his own. He professed always to love and seek peace : and it was his usual preface in his treaties, that when Christ came into the world, peace was sung ; and when he went out of the world, peace was bequeathed. And this virtue could not proceed out of lo fear or softness; for he was valiant and active, and there- fore, no doubt, it was truly Christian and moral. Yet he knew the way to peace was not to seem to be desirous to avoid wars : therefore would he make offers and fames of wars, till he had mended the conditions of peace. It 15 was also much, that one that was so great a lover of peace, should be so happy in war. For his arms, either in foreign or civil wars, were never unfortunate ; neither did he know what a disaster meant. The war of his coming in, and the rebellions of the earl of Lincoln, and the lord Audley, 20 were ended by victory. The wars of France and Scotland, by peaces sought at his hands. That of Britain, by acci- dent of the duke's death. The insurrection of the lord Lovel, and that of Perkin at Exeter, and in Kent, by flight of the rebels before they came to blows. So that his 25 fortune of arms was still inviolate : the rather sure, for that in the quenching of the commotions of his subjects, he ever went in person : sometimes reserving himself to back and second his lieutenants, but ever in action ; and yet that was not merely forwardness, but partly distrust of 30 others. He did much maintain and countenance his laws ; which, nevertheless, was no impediment to him to work his will : for it was so handled, that neither prerogative HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 213 nor profit went to diminution. And yet as he would some- times strain up his laws to his prerogative, so would he also let down his prerogative to his parliament. For mint, and wars, and martial discipline, things of absolute power, he would nevertheless bring to parliament. Justice was well 5 administered in his time, save where the King was party: save also, that the council-table intermeddled too much with 7nmm and Uiiun. For it was a very court of justice during his time, especially in the beginning; but in that part both of justice and policy, which is the durable part, 10 and cut, as it were, in brass or marble, which is the making of good laws, he did excel. And with his justice, he was also a merciful prince : as in whose time, there were but three of the nobility that suffered ; the earl of Warwick, tlie lord chamberlain, and the lord Audley : though the 15 first two were instead of numbers, in the dislike and ob- loquy of the people. But there were never so great re- bellions, expiated with so little blood, drawn by the hand of justice, as the two rebellions of Blackheath and Exeter. As for the severity used upon those which were taken in 20 Kent, it was but upon a scum of people. His pardons went ever both before and after his sword. But then he had withal a strange kind of interchanging of large and inexpected pardons, with severe executions : which, his wisdom considered, could not be imputed to any incon- 25 stancy or inequality ; but either to some reason which we do not now know, or to a principle he had set unto himself, that he would vary, and try both ways in turn. But the less blood he drew, the more he took of treasure. And, as some construed it, he was the more sparing in the one, 30 that he might be the more pressing in the other ; for both would have been intolerable. Of nature assuredly he coveted to accumulate treasure, and was a little poor in 214 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL admiring riches. The people, into whom there is infused, for the preservation of monarchies, a natural desire to discharge their princes, though it be with the unjust charge of their counsellors and ministers, did impute this unto 5 cardinal Morton and Sir Reginald Bray : who, as it after appeared, as counsellors of ancient authority with him, did so second his humours, as nevertheless they did temper them. Whereas Empson and Dudley that followed, being persons that had no reputation with him, otherwise than lo by the servile following of his bent, did not give way only, as the first did, but shape him way to those extremities, for which himself was touched with remorse at his death, and which his successor renounced and sought to purge. This excess of his had at that time many glosses and 15 interpretations. Some thought the continual rebellions wherewith he had been vexed, had made him grow to hate his people : some thought it was done to pull down their stomachs, and to keep them low : some, for that he would leave his son a golden fleece : some suspected he 20 had some high design upon foreign parts : but those per- haps shall come nearest the truth, that fetch not their reasons so far off; but rather impute it to nature, age, peace, and a mind fixed upon no other ambition or pursuit. Whereunto I should add, that having every day occasion 25 to take notice of the necessities and shifts for money of other great Princes abroad, it did the better, by com- parison, set off to him the felicity of full coffers. As to his expending of treasure, he never spared charge which his afiairs required ; and in his buildings was magnificent, 30 but his rewards were very limited : so that his liberality was rather upon his own state and memory than upon the deserts of others. He was of an high mind, and loved his own will and HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 215 his own way : as one that revered himself and would reign indeed. Had he been a private man, he would have been termed proud. But in a wise Prince, it was but keeping of distance, which indeed he did towards all ; not admitting any near or full approach, either to his power, or to his 5 secrets ; for he was governed by none. His Queen, not- withstanding she had presented him with divers children, and with a crown also, though he would not acknowledge it, could do nothing with him. His mother he reverenced much, heard little. For any person agreeable to him for 10 society, such as was Hastings to King Edward the fourth, or Charles Brandon after to King Henry the eighth, he had none : except we should account for such persons, Fox, and Bray, and Empson, because they were so much with him: but it was but as the instrument is much with 15 the workman. He had nothing in him of vainglory, but yet kept state and majesty to the height : being sensible, that majesty maketh the people bow, but vainglory boweth to them. To his confederates abroad he was constant and just, 20 but not open. But rather such was his inquiry, and such his closeness, as they stood in the light towards him, and he stood in the dark to them. Yet without strangeness, but with a semblance of mutual communication of affairs. As for little envies, or emulations upon sovereign princes, 25 which are frequent with many Kings, he had never any; but went substantially to his own business. Certain it is, that though his reputation was great at home, yet it was greater abroad. For foreigners that could not see the passages of affairs, but made their judgments upon the issues of them, 30 noted that he was ever in strife, and ever aloft. It grew also from the airs which the princes and states abroad received from their ambassadors and agents here; which were attend- 21 6 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII ing the court in great number: whom he did not only content with courtesy, reward, and privateness ; but, upon such con- ferences as passed with them, put them in admiration, to find his universal insight into the affairs of the world : which 5 tliough he did suck chiefly from themselves, yet that which he had gathered from them all, seemed admirable to every one. So that they did write ever to their superiors in high terms, considering his wisdom and art of rule : nay, when they were returned, they did commonly maintain intelligence lo with him. Such a dexterity he had to impropriate to him- self all foreign instruments. He was careful and liberal to obtain good intelligence from all parts abroad : wherein he did not only use his interest in the liegers here, and his pensioners, which he had both in the 1 5 court of Rome, and other the courts of Christendom ; but the industry and vigilance of his own ambassadors in foreign parts. For which purpose his instructions were ever ex- treme, curious and articulate ; and in them more articles touching inquisition, than touching negotiation : requiring 2o likewise from his ambassadors an answer, in particular dis- tinct articles, respectively to his questions. As for his secret spials, which he did employ both at home and abroad, by them to discover what practices and conspiracies were against him, surely his case required it ; 25 he had such moles perpetually working and casting to undermine him. Neither can it be reprehended ; for if spials be lawful against lawful enemies, much more against conspirators and traitors. But indeed to give them cre- dence by oaths or curses, that cannot be well maintained ; 30 for those are too holy vestments for a disguise. Yet surely there was this farther good in his employing of these flies and familiars ; that as the use of them was cause that many cons]3iracies were revealed, so the fame and suspicion of HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 217 them ke[)t, no doubt, many conspiracies from being at- tempted. Towards his Queen he was nothing uxorious, nor scarce indulgent ; but companiable and respective, and without jealousy. Towards his children he was full of paternal 5 affection, careful of their education, aspiring to their high advancement, regular to see that they should not want of any due honour and respect, but not greatly willing to cast any popular lustre upon them. To his council he did refer much, and sat oft in person ; 10 knowing it to be the way to assist his power, and inform his judgment. In which respect also he was fliirly patient of liberty, both of advice, and of vote, till himself were de- clared. He kept a strait hand on his nobility, and chose rather to advance clergymen and lawyers, which were more 1 5 obse(juious to him, but had less interest in the people ; which made for his absoluteness, but not for his safely. Insomuch as, I am persuaded, it was one of the causes of his troublesome reign ; for that liis nobles, though they were loyal and obedient, yet did not co-operate with him, but let 20 every man go his own way. He was not afraid of an able man, as Lewis the eleventh was : but contrariwise, he was served by the ablest men that were to be found; without which his affairs could not have prospered as they did. For war, Bedford, Oxford, Surrey, Daubeney, Brook, Poynings : 25 for other affairs, Morton, Fox, Bray, the prior of Lanthony, Warham, Urswick, Hussey, Frowick, and others. Neither did he care how cunning they were that he did employ ; for he thought himself to have the master-reach. And as he chose well, so he held them up well ; for it is a strange 30 thing, that though he were a dark prince, and infinitely sus- picious, and his times full of secret conspiracies and troubles; yet in twenty four years' reign, he never put down, or dis- 2tS history GF king henry VII . composed counsellor, or near servant, save only Stanley the lord chamberlain. As for the disposition of his subjects in general towards him, it stood thus with him ; that of the three affections which naturally tie the hearts of the subjects 5 to their sovereigns, love, fear, and reverence ; he had the last in height, the second in good measure, and so little of the first, as he was beholden to the other two. He was a Prince, sad, serious, and full of thoughts, and secret observations, and full of notes and memorials of his ro own hand, especially touching persons. As, whom to em- ploy, whom to reward, whom to inquire of, whom to beware of, what were the dependencies, what were the factions, and the like ; keeping, as it were, a journal of his thoughts. There is to this day a merry tale ; that his monkey, set on as 1 5 it was thought by one of his chamber, tore his principal note- book all to pieces, when by chance it lay forth : whereat the court, which liked not those pensive accounts, was almost tickled with sport. He was indeed full of apprehensions and suspicions : 20 but as he did easily take them, so he did easily check them and master them ; whereby they were not dangerous, but troubled himself more than others. It is true, his thoughts were so many, as they could not well always stand together; but that which did good one way, did hurt another. Neither 25 did he at some times weigh them aright in their proportions. Certainly, that rumour which did him so much mischief, that the duke of York should be saved, and alive, was, at the first, of his own nourishing; because he would have more reason not to reign in the right of his wife. He was 30 affable, and both well and fair-spoken ; and would use strange sweetness and blandishments of words, where he de- sired to effect or persuade any thing that he took to heart. He was rather studious than learned; reading most books HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 219 that were of any worth, m the French tongue, yet he under- stood the Latin, as appeareth in that cardinal Adrian and others, who could very well have written French, did use to write to him in Latin. For his pleasures, there is no news of them : and yet by 5 his instructions to Marsin and Stile, touching the Queen of Naples, it seemeth he could interrogate well touching beauty. He did by pleasures, as great Princes do by banquets, come and look a little upon them, and turn away. For never Prince was more wholly given to his affliirs, nor in them 10 more of himself : insomuch as in triumphs of jousts and tour- neys, and balls, and masks, which they then called disguises, he was rather a princely and gentle spectator, than seemed much to be delighted. No doubt, in him, as in all men, and most of all in 15 Kings, his fortune wrought upon his nature, and his nature upon his fortune. He attained to the crown, not only from a private fortune, which might endow him with moderation; but also from the fortune of an exiled man, which had quickened in him all seeds of observation and industry. And his times 20 being rather prosperous than calm, had raised his confidence by success, but almost marred his nature by troubles. His wisdom, by often evading from perils, was turned rather into a dexterity to deliver himself from dangers, when they ])ressed him, than into a providence to prevent and remove 25 them afar off. And even in nature, the sight of his mind was like some sights of eyes ; rather strong at hand, than to carry afar oft'. For liis wit increased upon the occasion ; and so much the more, if the occasion were sharpened by danger. Again, whether it were the shortness of his fore- 30 sight, or the strength of his will, or the dazzling of his sus- picions, or what it was ; certain it is, that the perpetual troubles of his fortunes, tliere being no more matter out of 2 20 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII which they grew, could not have been without some great defects and main errors in his nature, customs, and pro- ceedings, which he had enough to do to save and help with a thousand little industries and watches. But those do best 5 appear in the story itself. Yet take him with all his defects, if a man should compare him with the Kings his concur- rents in France and Spain, he shall find him more politic than Lewis the twelfth of France, and more entire and sin- cere than Ferdinando of Spain. But if you shall change lo Lewis the twelfth for Lewis the eleventh, who lived a little before, then the consort is more perfect. For that Lewis the eleventh, Ferdinando, and Henry may be esteemed for the ires ?nagi of Kings of those ages. To conclude, if this King did no greater matters, it was long of himself; for what 15 he minded he compassed. He was a comely personage, a little above just stature, well and straight limbed, but slender. His countenance was reverend, and a little like a churchman : and as it was not strange or dark, so neither was it winning or pleasing, but 20 as the face of one well disposed. But it was to the dis- advantage of the painter, for it was best when he spake. His worth may bear a tale or two, that may put upon him somewhat that may seem divine. When the lady Margaret his mother had divers great suitors for marriage, 25 she dreamed one night, that one in the likeness of a bishop in pontifical habit did tender her Edmund earl of Richmond, the King's father, for her husband, neither had she ever any child but the King, though she had three husbands. One day when King Henry the sixth, whose innocency gave him 30 holiness, was washing his hands at a great feast, and cast his eye upon King Henry, then a young youth, he said ; " This " is the lad that shall possess quietly that, that we now strive for." But that, that was truly divine in him, was that he HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. 221 had the fortune of a true Christian, as well as of a great King, in living exercised, and dying repentant : So as he had an happy warfare in both conflicts, both of sin, and the cross. He was born at Pembroke castle, and lieth buried at West- 5 minster, in one of the stateliest and daintiest monuments of Europe, both for the chapel, and for the sepulchre. So that he dwelleth more richly dead, in the monument of his tomb, than he did alive in Richmond, or any of his palaces. I could wish he did the like in this monument of his fame. 10 NOTES. Dedication, p. 3. Prince Charles, son of James I, and afterwards King Charles I. The History of Henry VH was written in 1622, three years hefore tlic death of James I. Prince Henry the eldest son of James I died in r6i2, whereupon Charles became Prince of Wales, &c. Prince of Wales. This title was first bestowed on the heir to the English throne by Edward I, who created his son Edward, born at Caernarvon, Prince of Wales in 1284. Duke cf Cornwall. This title was first given to the Prince of Wales when Edward HI created the Black Prince duke of Cornwall in 1335. Earl of Chester. This title existed in early times, and was not at first a title of the royal house, but was made such by Henry HI, who bestowed it on his son Prince Edward in 1245. On an attempt which was made during this reign to obtain it for other than the royal family see p. 125, 1. 4. Line r. // may please, ^c. The more usual order in modern times is. May it please. In the older form some expression, as I hope, is to be mentally supplied. For an example of a similar character see p. 136, line 27. 4. last King of England, that was ancestor, dr'c. Heniy VH was father of Margaret, who married James IV of Scotland. Their son was James V, the father of Mary, Queen of Scots, who was mother of James VI of Scotland and I of England. 6. doth unions, i. e. first, the union of the two families of York and Lancaster by the marriage of Henry VII, the representative of the Lancastrian house, with Elizabeth, daughter of Edward IV, of the Yorkist line ; and secondly, in later times, the union of the two king- doms of England and Scotland under the same monarch, which was brought about by the succession of James I to the English throne on the death of Queen Elizabeth. Both these events may be referred to Henry VIL P. 4, line I. better for the liver, i. e. more comfortable for those who live in them. Uneventful times may be said to be such, while stirring times supply more details for the writer of history. The Latin text is : altcnim genus tempornm viventibus comniodius, alterum scribentibus g)a- tius. The noun liver is not of frequent occurrence. It is found in 22 4 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VJL Shakespeare, Cymb. iii. 4. 15: "Prithee, think there's livers out of Britain." 1. took. In modern EngHsh we should write taken. But this con- fused use as a participle of the form which has since been confined to the past tense was not uncommon in Bacon's time. Cf. Shakespeare, M. for M. II. 2. 74 : "and he that might the vantage best have took.^'' 5. inco7n parable. It must be remembered that Bacon wrote this in the year after his condemnation by the House of Lords. King James had remitted both parts of the sentence, the fine and the imprisonment, and so the strength of this epithet may be due in some measure to that circumstance, but compare the dedication of the Advancement of Learn- ing, written in 1605, where even stronger language than that in our text appears. Cf. p. Z (Clarendon Press Series), " I am well assured that this which I shall say is no amplification at all, but a positive and measured truth ; which is that there hath not been since Christ's time any king or temporal prince which hath been so learned in all literature and erudition divine and human, &c." The dedication of the Authorized Version of the Bible to this same King is in a like laudatory and flatter- ing style, which was, as it seems, the common mode of addressing this pedantic monarch. 7. pieces, i. e. pictures, keeping up the metaphor from painting which he had employed in the previous sentence. The Latin text has exejnplar. For the English word in this sense cf. Shaks. Timon, i. i. 28 : "Let's see your piece; 'Tis a good piece. ..what a mental power this eye shoots forth." 10. Francis St Alban. Bacon was created Viscount St Alban Janu- ary 27th, 1620 — I. Text, p. 5. Henry the Seventh. The connection of the King with the house of Lancaster will be seen from the following table : Edward III I John of Gaunt and Catharine Swynford John Beaufort (earl of Somerset) Owen Tudor m Catharine widow John Beaufort (duke of Somerset) of Henry V Edmund Tudor married Margaret Beaufort ' -^ -» Henry VII. John Beaufort (earl of Somerset) was one of several natural children of fohn of Gaunt by Catharine Swynford, who subsequently became his third wife. The children were called Beaufort from the name of the castle in France where they were born. These illegitimate children were legitimated by an Act of Parliament in 1397, and no restriction was then put upon their claim to the throne. NOTES. 225 [.ine I. in fact. An English representation of the Latin phrase de facto, as opposed to de jure. See below, p, 15, 1. 11. 1. regiment = ryx\e, government. Cf. the title of John Knox's work, "The first blast of the trumpet against the monstrous regiment of women," a work in which he assails the rule of the three Marys, Mary of Guise, queen-dowager and regent of Scotland ; Mary queen of Scots and queen Mary of England. The Latin has regimen. 8. a devout mother. The name of Lady Margaret, the mother of Henry VII, still survives in the Universities of Oxford and Cambridge, in the titles bestowed upon the readers in divinity, the chairs for which she endowed. Christ's College and St John's in Cambridge are also monuments of her devotion. She was likewise a benefactress to the monasteries of Thorney, Peterborough, Croyland, Bourn and Spalding. Sec Cooper's Lady Margaret, lately edited by Professor Mayor. Her parentage is seen from the pedigree on the previous page. She was first given in marriage, at the age of nine, by her guardian William de la Pole, duke of Suffolk, to his son John who afterwards became duke of Suffolk. But when her guardian was attainted in 1450, this marriage was regarded as a nullity, and she afterwards married Edmund Tudor the father of Henry VII. Her husband dying before their son was born, she afterwards married lord Henry Stafford, a younger son of Humphrey Stafford first duke of Buckingham. This second husband died in 1482, and she soon after was married to Thomas, second lord Stanley. Lady Margaret was born in 1441 and died in 1509. 13. the body of Richard. The body of the late king was stripped, laid across a horse behind a pursuivant-at-arms, and conveyed to Leicester, where, after it had been exposed for two days, it was buried with little ceremony in the church of the Grey Eriars. Ten years later Henry VII caused a tomb to be erected over the grave. 14. diriges, funeral-hymns. I'he name is said to be derived from the Latin word dirige which occurs in the first line of a solemn Latin hymn of the Romish Church : Dirige gressus meos. Hence the modern word dirge. This etymology has been disputed but no better has been suggested in its place. The word occurs in Spenser, Mother Ilubbard's Tale, line 454: "Their diriges, their trentals and their shrifts." 18. religious people. Monks and nuns are frequently thus spoken of, as being more devoted to a life of religion than others. Cf. Roy's "Read me and be not wroth" (Arber's Reprints), p. 152: "The apostles had all thynges in comone, lyke as soche clarkes and religyous saye they have nowe. In tokenynge whereof no man sayd...thys ys myne, so our clarkes and namely [i. e. especially] relygyous people when they will speak in terras of their religyon." P. 6, line ■2. M«w(?r//i)/ i?/"= inappropriate to, unmeet for, undeserved, in the sense of l)eing too bad for. Latin, injuriosus. Cf. Shakespeare. Richard III, i. 1. 88 : ... doing worthy vengeance on thyself Which didst unworthy slaughter upon others. executioner of King Henry VI. Edward IV had the report cir- B. H. ^5 226 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIl. ciliated that Henry VI died of grief, as had formerly been reported of Richard II ; but the writei's under the next dynasty all agree in stating that he was murdered, if not by the hand, at all events by the direction, of Richard, duke of Gloucester. 4. contriver of the death of the duke of Claience. The reason why this has been laid at the door of the duke of Gloucester is doubtless because of the disputes between him and Clarence about the disposal of the wealth of the earl of Warwick, one of whose daughters they had each married, Clarence the eldest, and Gloucester the younger. 5. his tzuo nepheivs, i.e. Edward V and Richard duke of York. 7. failing of him = %\\o\x\(\ he die without issue. 8. impoisoner of his wife. Richard's wife was Anne the younger daughter of Warwick the king-maker. She died i6th March, 1485. It was rumoured that her death was by poison, and that Richard wished to marry his niece Elizabeth of York, eldest daughter of Edward IV. It is said that in the festivities of the previous Christmas the princess Elizabeth had been dressed in robes of the same fashion and colour as those of the queen. Ratcliffe and Catesby, the king's confidants, are credited with having represented to Richard that this marriage of so near a kinswoman would be an object of horror to the people, and bring on him the condemnation of the clergy. 9. degrees forbidden, i. e. degrees of kinship or affinity within which marriages are forbidden to take place. 10. ittr military virtue approved. Even the writers who are loudest in the praise of Henry VII, do not deny to Richard the merit of great bravery. jealous... la^vmaker. In his address to his parliament Richard is reported to have said, "We be determined rather to adventure and commit us to the peril of our life and jeopardy of death, than to live in such thraldom and bondage as we have lived long time heretofore, oppressed and injured by extortions and new impositions against the laws of God and man, and liberty, old policy and laws of this realm wherein every Englishman is inherited." Among his good laws may 1)6 mentioned one against the arbitrary exactions of money under the name of "Benevolences" which had been so common in the reign of Edward IV. He regulated the laws relating to bail, and enacted that the goods of suspected persons should not be seized before their conviction. He made good laws to secure the rights of buyers to any property which they had purchased, and facilitated the transfer of landed property by the act known as "the Statute of Fines." See additional Notes. 13. parricides. This word derived honi pater, a fatiier, and ccedo, to kill, was originally applied to the nmrder of parents, but even in Latin its signification was extended till it came to be used of any murder. 21. trains and mines, schemes and underhand plans. For trains cf. Shaksp. Macbeth, IV. 3. 118: Macbeth by many of these trains hath sought to win me. 24. disorder s = x\o\.Qyxi living. Lingard sums up this part of the character of Edward IV thus: — "The love of pleasure was his ruling NOTES. 227 passion. Few princes have been more magnificent in their dress, or more licentious in their amours ; few have mdulged more freely in the luxuries of the table." His voluptuous life is again mentioned by Bacon, p. 7. Towards the latter part of his life he became very unwieldy in body, and incapacitated for any active exertion. 31. Piqiieny. (Modern orthography Picquigny.) On the Somme, a little N.W. of Amiens. The treaty made at this place was in 1475. Edward the IVth had been urged by Charles, duke of Burgundy, to prosecute his claims on France, and aid from Burgundy had been promised him. But the duke was prevented from fulfilling his promises, and Louis XI found means to persuade the King of England to return home. The treaty was made on a wooden bridge hastily thrown over the Somme, on which two lodges were erected for the royal interview. There was much murmuring in England at the turn of events, the King was accused of avarice, and his counsellers of having suffered themselves to be bribed by Louis. These are the circumstances of which Bacon states that Richard took advantage. P. 7, line 3. mean marriage. The wife of Edward IV was Elizabeth Wydeville, daughter of Sir Richard Wydeville, Lord Rivers, and his wife Jaquetta duchess of Bedford. She had previously been married to Sir John Grey a Lancastrian who was killed at the second battle of St Albans. Her marriage with Edward was kept secret from May 1 464 till the following September. When the King acknowledged liis wife there were many who murmured, and could ill disguise their jealousy at the elevation to the throne of one whose father a few years ago was no more than a simple knight. Sir Richard Wydeville had been created Lord Rivers in 1448. For further notice of this queen and her family see pp. 28, 29, and the notes thereon. 7. brocage. This word is from the same root as broker. It wa, applied in contempt to the mean trafficking of a petty dealer, and tlien came to be applied to any mean arts or practices, as here to the designing conduct of the duke of Gloucester. Cf. Warner, Albion's England, VIII. 41 : And should he know (I shame he should) Of this your brokage base, He would acquaint you what it were Your sovereign to disgrace. 13. able to trouble, i. e. enough to trouble, calculated to trouble. Latin posset perturbare. Cf. Bacon's Essays (the edition by Mr W. Aldis Wright is that which is always referred to, and I here acknow- ledge a multitude of obligations to his valuable volumes which it would be endless to mention as they recur). Essay XXix. p. 129, ** Donatives and largesses upon the disbanding of the armies were things able to enflame all men's courages. " 19. precedent pact, i. e. previous compact or agreement. See p. 8, line 30. A compact of this kind had been known to the duke of Buckingham before his revolt against Richard III. The crown was 15—2 2 28 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. to be settled on Henry earl of Richmond and Elizabeth daughter of Edward TV, now the nearest representatives of the Houses of Lancaster and York. See Dugdale, Vol. i. p. i68. For an account of the first movement in this comjiact and of the Lady Margaret's consent thereto in the name of her son, see Lingard iv. pp. 119, 120. Grafton (p. 864) says that Henry w'len in Brittany took an oath to Elizabeth queen of Edward IV to marry her eldest daughter. 21. by plea and arms. The plea which had always been put forward on behalf of the Lancastrian line was that there had been a wrong succession since the time of Edward I. The line of descent was as follows : — Henry HI I'^dward I Edmund, earl of Lancaster I 1 Edward H Henry, earl of Lancaster I I Edward HI ITemy, duke of Lancaster I I John of Gaunt married Blanche, duchess of Lancaster u ^ J Henry IV. It was pretended that Edmund earl of Lancaster was the elder of the sons of Henry III, but being deformed, had been set aside by his own consent. Yet through Edmund's great-granddaughter Blanche Henry IV might on this ground claim to be the rightful heir, and set aside any of the children of Edward III, of whom only the family of Lionel duke of Clarence could claim before him. The claim by arms was through the dc J\icto Kings Henry IV, Henry V and Henry VI. 30. plausible., here not used in any derogatory sense, Init meaning praiseworthy. Cf. Earle's " Microcosmdgraphie " (Arber's Reprints), p. Tor : "All men put on to him (the poor man) a kind of churlisher fashion, and even movo. plausible natures [are] churlish to him. 33. al courtesy, i.e. by sufferance. We now call the titles given in compliment to younger .sons of nobility courtesy titles. P. 8, line 6. civil act of estates. The parliament was (and is) spoken of as the three estates of the realm, which were in these times Lords, Commons, and Convocation. A King by an act of estates is therefore a King by act of parliament 16. a title co7ide7nned by parliament. This condemnation of the title of the House of Lancaster took place in the parliament which met in November, 1461, after the coronation of Edward the IVth. Henry IV, Henry V and Henry VI were declared late, in fact, but not of right. Kings of England. A bill of attainder was passed at the same time whereby all the distinguished supporters of the House of Lancaster, as well as the King and his kinsfolk were adjudged to suffer the penalties of treason, the loss of their honours, the forfeiture of their estates and an ignominious death, l^ot. Pari, '^^■A, v. PP- 463, 476, 486. NOTES. 229 19. m(/z^^?Vrt/^ = undoubted. It is worth while to notice the number of Latin words which were, by the revival of learning, imported into the English of this and the previous century, with a mere modification of termination. As the language advanced in vigour these fell away and had their places supplied by other words, less Latin in form. Cf. castcalties, 17, 28: prejudge, 2 1,30: person (in the sense of cha- racter), 23, 14: office, 38, 6, and many more. ■25. Sir William Stanley, brother of Thomas, Lord Stanley, and so uncle to Lord Strange. Sir William Stanley was chamberlain of North Wales under Richard III and engaged in concert with Lord Strange and Sir John Savage to join the army of the earl of Richmond, which they eventually did, though they continued to wear the appear- ance of hostility till the field of Bosworth because Richard had posses- sion of the person of Lord Strange. More particulars concerning Sir William Stanley will be found on pp. 124, 125, and the notes thereon. 28. and was found, i. e. and which (crown) was found. Both relatives and personal pronouns were frequently omitted in Bacon's time, though a sentence containing another nominative intervened be- tween the pronoun and its verb, where now for greater clearness we repeat them. Cf. infra, p. 24, line 18 : "She was a busy negociating woman, and in her withdrawing-chamber had the fortunate conspiracy for the King against King Richard the third been hatched ; which the King knew, and remembered perhaps but too well : and was {where now 7ve should say and she was)... extremely discontent with the King." Cf. also p. 72, line 16, where to make the sense clear then are must be inserted before no middle people. P. 9, line 5. forbore to use that claim. William the Contjueror put forward his claims to the P^nglish crown on the right he had by the bequest of Edward the Confessor and also his personal claim on Harold as his sworn man. See Freeman's Norman Conquest, Vol. III. ]). 431. 8. cast the die. This phrase in the active form is rare in English. The passive form, the die was cast, is common enougli. Cf. North's Plutarch, p. 549: " Crying out... let the die be cast. ..he (Julius Caesar) passed over with his army." lo. inta-reign. The more completely Latin form interregnum has, contrary to most other instances, won its way to general acceptance. 15. an entertainer of fortune by the day, one who took fortune as it came without great attempts at provision for the distant future. 21. three descents, i.e. Henry IV, Henry V and Henry VI, the three successive monarchs of the house of Lancaster. 30. Sir Robert Willoughby, created in 1485 Lord Willoughby of Brook (p. 18). This nobleman commanded the forces .sent over in 14S8 to the aid of the duke of Brittany. See additional Notes. 33. Edtuard Plantagcnet. It may be convenient to give here a genealogical table which will make plain the relationship of all those persons'who were interested in the succession to the crown at the death of Edward the IVth and afterwards at the death of Richard III. 230 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. .f U O ►^ "z; ^ l«- -4-" ■+ O rt ^ 1) '"' ^■5'i^ — OJ V, w S tr. rt 1^ -I T3 C Ik--' ■2 ° ^ "" -r- !-i o s - . C 4) 8 •£ 2 "'- o O "J - ^15 j3 w. "^ ^ ^ ^ S b B - o L I- *^ ^ O O 5 > i-i I. 9. NOTES. 231 P. ro, line 7. doctor Shaw's tale at Pauls cross. While Richard duke of Gloucester was protector, and was preparing his way to the throne, he appointed Dr Shaw (the brother of the Lord Mayor) to preach at St Paul's Cross. He (says Lingard) "selected for his text the following passage of the Book of Wisdom (iv. 3) : ' Bastard slips shall not strike deep roots.' Having maintained from different examples that children were seldom permitted to enjoy the fruits of their father's iniquity, he proceeded to describe the well-known libertinism of the late King. " The preacher after this proceeded to state that previous to the King's marriage with Lady Grey, he had been privately married to Eleanor, the widow of the Lord Boteler of Sudely, and therefore the children bom to the King and Lady Grey were illegitimate and so could have no claim to the succession of their father. ro. ^'^= utterly. For this emphatic use of the adverb ever, cf. Shakespeare, Pericles, v. i. 204:' Truth can never be confirm'd enough, Though doubts did ever sleep. 13. did use =-^^5 wont. Cf. Shaksp. J. Ca^s. i. 2. 72 : Were I a common laugher, or did use To stale with ordinary oaths my love. 20. forwards. The s at the end of this and other similar words compounded with 7i^-—[^()%). He had been betrothed to the daughter of Maximilian, while he was dauphin, after the peace of Arras. 33. Ferdinando and Isabella, Kings of Spain (1476 — i5i6). Fer- dinand was son of John, King of Aragon ; and on his marriage with Isabella, queen of Castile, the two monarchies of Spain were united and have never been severed. 7amcs the third, A'ing of Scotland ( 1 460-88). For his fate, sec p. C)^. P. 14, line 6. yeomen of his guard. This is the first occasion of the appointment of a royal body guard. Grafton says of it : " Men thought that he learned this president [precedent] of the French King when he was in France, for men rcnitnihre not anye King of Englande before that tyme which used such a furniture of daylye souldiours." 25. in his danger, at his mercy. Cf. Shakespeare, Merch. of Venice, IV. 1. 180: "Vou stand within his danger." 29. reclaim = t,in\e, subdue, make gentle, one of the many technical terms which were used in hawking. Cf. Shakespeare, Rom. and Juliet, iv. 2. 47: "This wayward girl is so reclaimed." 32. more than that = except thsLt. The J. a.iinha.s pra-ter which had fallen jn, windfalls as we now call them. Lat. casualia. The English of Bacon's time was largely mixed with Latin words only Anglicised in the termination. This use of casualties seems to be peculiar to Bacon. 31. form sake. The omission of the s of the^ genitive case in nouns followed by a word beginning with a sibilant letter can be readily understood, from the desire of getting rid of the too great amount of hissing sounds. In Skelton, i. 261, we have "For my fansy sake," and in Shaks. Love's L. L. iv. i. 37, "Only for praise sake when tliey strive to be lords o'er their lords." See Matzner, Eng. Grammatik, i. 235. 32. reduce aliens, &>€. i.e. to make foreign-bom persons, althougli they have become naturalized in England, yet remain on the same footing as mere unnaturalized foreigners, in the matter of the customs and dues which they might have to pay. P. 18, line I. compositions, &c. The political economy of Henry the Vllth's time aimed at letting as little coin of the realm go out of the country as possible. It was therefore enacted that Italian and other merchants who brought the commodities of their own countries to England, should be fined if they did not expend the receipts in English products to carry away instead of coin. These fines were the cotJi- positions for not- employment. On the warrant of a similar statute Erasmus when returning to his own country was only allowed to carry six angels in money with him, the rest being seized for the royal exchequer. See Seebohm's Oxford Reformers, p. 161. 9. Lord Chandos. His creation is dated 6 Jan. i486. He is therein called Philibert de Shaunde, and along with his title he is granted 100 marks out of the issues of the counties of Somerset and Dorset for the support of his estate. The preamble of the creation recites the exertions which had been made by the recipient on behalf of the restoration of Henry. The title became extinct with the death of the first earl. 10. Lord Daubeney. This title descended through two generations and became extinct in 1548. This first lord Daubeney afterwards became deputy of Calais, see p. 76. 14. Edward Stafford. This was the duke of Buckingham who was afterwards attainted and executed in 152 1. He was descended from Edward III both by father and mother. The subjoined table will show his close relationship to King Heniy VII, and the connection of both with the line of Edward III. 2 36 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI I. S c/: j5 p: o c o -a c — > s 4; 5 -^ if; J- 3 o •^3 rt ^ o c •SO ~ i) i, _^ — NOTES. 237 23. Marquis Darsd. This was Sir Thomas Grey (a son by her first marriage of Elizabeth, queen of Edward IV) who had been attainted by King Richard III in his first year, and was restored in \x6i. His petition to the Kin^ for reversal of the attainder sets forth that it had been incurred by " tne tnie service which he owed and did unto the now King's Grace." (See Materials for History of Hen. VII, Rolls Series, p. 138.) Before he became Marquis Dorset in 1475, he had been earl of Huntingdon, and previously Eord Grey of GVoby. Eor his further history see p. 34, and the notes thereon. Sir John BoKrcliicr (afterwards Lord Berners). His grandfather had been knight of the garter and constable of Windsor Castle. Sir John distinguished himself in 1495 in the suppression of the Cornish rebellion. He was made lieutenant of Calais by Henry VIII. He conducted the Princess Mary, sister to Henry VIII, to France when she was married to Louis XII. He died at Calais in 1532. We owe to him a noble translation of Froissart's Chronicle, printed in 1523. He also wrote several other works, among the rest "The History of Arthur of Lytell Brytaynu. " 27. Master Bray. This was Sir Reginald Bray, who had taken .in active part in the plans for placing Henry on the throne. He was formerly steward of the household to Lady Margaret, and a trustee under her marriage with Lord Stanley. lie died in 1503. In Kippis's Biographia Britannica is a memoir of Sir Reginald Bray," il. 572. 28. prcst, here = a loan. The word is very common (as might be expected) in the documents connected w ith the early part of this reign, but not quite in the sense in which it is here used. For examples of the word = loan, see North's Plutarch (1595), p. 638, "It chanced the King was without money : whereupon he sent to all his friends to take up money in prest, and among otlicrs unto Eumenes, of whom he requested three hundred talents. Eumenes lent him but a hundred." Cf. Cooper's Lady Margaret (Mayor), Glossary, p. 278. In the Ma- terials for History of Hen. VII, the word seems to imply a fine or deduction. See I. pp. 97, 262, 264, 265. Thus p. 262, " Mandate to the treasurer and chamberlains of the Exchequer to pay (without delay, upon the sight hereof, in ready money without prest or other charge) to Nicolas Warley of LondDU, goldsmith, &c." 29. six thousand marks. The value of the mark was 13^-. ^d. So that the sum asked for was ;i^4000, of which the King obtained only one half It must be borne in mind that the value of money was then more than twelve times what it is now. See Froude, History of England, Vol. 1. p. 26. 33- John Morton was now bishop of Ely, but in i486 succeeded liourchier as archbishop of Canterbury, which see he. held till his death in 1500. He commenced life as a lawyer, which may perhaps account for the position which he afterwards occupied among the influential advisers of Henry VII, He espoused the cause of the house of Lancaster, and was present at their defeat at the battle of Towton. He fled into Flanders with Queen Margaret, and did not return till the battle of Barnet. But when the Lancastrian cause was utterly over- 238 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. thrown at Tewkesbury Morton submitted, and sent in his adhesion to the victorious family, and was advanced by Edward the IVtli in the most lavish manner. His preferments are far too numerous to register here. He was (among many other offices) Master of the Rolls in 1472, archdeacon of Winchester and archdeacon of Chester both in 1474, and liecame bishop of Ely in 1479. ^^ attended the deathbed of King Edward IV. He was arrested by Richard duke of Gloucester when protector, after that scene which occurred when Lord Hastings was seized and executed, which Shakespeare sets forth so graphically, Richard HI, Act 3, Sc. 4. After his arrest he was committed to the charge of the duke of Buckingham, and with him entered into a cor- respc5ndence with Lady Margaret for the purpose of raising Henry, earl of Richmond, to the throne. It was not long after tliis that Morton escaped from Brecknock, where he was in custody, and left England for P'landers. He did not join Henry in Brittany, but kept up a communication between England and Flanders, which enabled him to supply the earl of Richmond with valuable information. After the coronation of Henry VII, Morton's attainder was reversed, and on his return he was made one of the Privy Council, and throughout the whole reig^ of Henry was one of that king's chief counsellers. He was made Lord Chancellor of England and Archbishop of Canter- bury in the same year. On the dilemma termed Morton's fork see p. 95, and for a notice of his death and character, ]). 182. P. 19, line I. Richard Fox. At tliis time bishop of Exeter and Lord Pri\'y Seal, l^ut afterwards promoted first to be bishop of Durham and afterwards bishop of Winchester. He was a trusted friend of Lady Margaret and was appointed one of her executors, and, with Morton, Bray and Daubeney, was of much influence witli Henry VII during his whole reign. 12. car7-ied their reheard upon themselves. Those who received, as rewards for their services, rich bishoprics had reward enough therein, anil needed no more from the King's bounty. 14. Jirst fruits {annates or priniitiit) was the value of every spiritual living by the year, which the Pope, claiming the disposition of all ecclesiastical livings within Christendom, reserved out of every living. As to what Pope first imposed first fruits historians do not agree. Black- stone ascribes the imposition to Pope Innocent IV. In the 34 Edward I in a parliament held at Carlisle a complaint was made of the intolerable oppressions by the papal legate, principally concerning first fruits, and the King hereupon denied the payment of first fruits, and the pope relin- quished his demand of first fruits of abbeys, in wliich parliament the first fruits for two years were granted to the King. There were many altera- tions in the period between that parliament and the 25 Henry VIII, when the first fruits were expressly annexed to the Crown. The text indicates that the first fruits of bishoprics were in Henry the Vllth's time paid to the Crown. For full particulars on this subject, see Bum's Eccl. Law (by Phillimore), Vol. 11. p. 273seqq. 17. long expected and so much desired marriage. On the loth Dec. 1485, the Commons in full Parliament prayed the King "that he NOTES. 239 would please to take tlie noble Lady Elizabeth, daughter of King Edward the IV, as his wife and consort. Whereupon the Lords Spiri- tual and Temporal being present at the same Parliament, rose from their seats, and standing before the King as he sat on his royal throne with their heads bowed and with lowly voice made unto the King the same request. To whom, with his own lips, he replied that he was content to proceed according to their desire and request." Trans- lated from Matenals for History of Hen. VII. (Rolls Series), Vol. i. p. 209. The marriage, which took place on the i8th January, 1485 — 6, was thought by some to have been too long delayed, and historians have declaimed against Henry on this account. He had pledged himself by a solemn oath taken on Christmas day 1483, at the church of Rennes, to marry the princess Elizabeth, or, in case of her death or previous union with another, her sister Cecilia. Dean Hook {Lives of Archbishops, V. 384) thinks that the delay was partly attributable to the prevalence of the sweating sickness. Perhaps also, as the papal dispensation was required for their marriage, the application may have consumed some part of the time. The text of this dispensation is given in Mat. for Hist, of Hen. VII, p. 392. It is noteworthy that in the same records very little is found in the way of entries for expenses on the marriage, though there are several connected with the queen's coronation, as we shall hereafter have to notice. 24. no very indulgent husband. The charge of coldness and severity towards his consort, which has been so frequently urged by historians against Henry VII, is far from true (see Nicolas's Memoir of Elizabeth of York., LXXXII. Excerpta Historica, 86). "There is ample proof that he lived with all his family in the greatest hannony." Excerpta Historica, 286, quoted by Prof. Mayor in The Lady Mar- garet, p. 33. 27. so...as=so...that. This is the usual form in r)acon's language. Cp. pp. 22. 1 : 28, 14, et passim, P. 20, line 5. the northern parts. Richard III. was crowned a second time at York, and the inhabitants had been instructed on that occasion to shew by their conduct how they rejoiced at his accession, so "that the southern lords might mark the receiving of their Graces." This second coronation was held to please the men of the North, among whom Richard had for some years been popular. See Lingard, iv. 117. 10. oz'er-cast. The word is used as we now employ cast in the phrase "to cast accounts," and signifies, to add up to too large a total, to count too much on. The Latin text is in fortumr su(r supputatione et calculis judicio suo magfiopere falsus est. I have not found the English word elsewhere in this sense. 14. Lord Lovel. Some interesting particulars connected with this nobleman's share in the rebellion may be gathered from the Paston Letters (Gairdner), Vol. ill. Letters 889 seqq. Lord Lovel had married Anne, the daughter of Alice Lady Fitzhugh, one of Paston's correspond- ents. In letter 890, he is said, contrary to the statement in our text, p. 21, line 8, to have fled into the Isle of I'Uy to provide, if he could. 240 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI L means for escaping out of the country, or else to betake himself to the sanctuary again. But this may perhaps have been before he made his way into Lancashire. Of his death see p. 37 and the note there. r4. I In mphrey Stafford and Thomas Stafford. These were the sons of that Humphrey Stafford (Stafford and Hastang) who was slain by Jack Cade, 1450, and who was buried at Bromsgrove, with which place (see Nash's Worcestershire, i. 157) the family was connected. For the circumstances of the father's death see Lingard, iv. 49. The elder son Humphrey, who had fought for Richard HI at Bosworth, left a family of two sons and three daughters, but their property was seized to the crown in consequence of their father's attainder, and was granted to Sir Gilbert Talbot. Thomas the younger brother was the founder of the family of Stafford of Tottenho in Buckinghamshire. When these bro- thers were first seized they were brought to Worcester to be executed at once, but the abbot of Abingdon arrived at Worcester in time to prevent their immediate execution, and their case was brought in conse- cjuence, as is related by Bacon, before the King's Bench. 25. had nothing in it of the jnain party of the house of York. The Latin text says " had no connection with the cause of the Yorkist family :" nee ad causani faniilicc Eboraeensis qiiidqnam pertinere. 28. core, used for inidst^ as we now use it of the central seed-pods of apples and such fruits. The word itself is derived from a>;' = the heart. The Latin text is in medio popnli siln siispeeti. 3[. luell assured, i. e. on whose fidelity he could rely. P. 21, line 6. the heralds 7cere the great ordnance. The proclama- tions of pardon which they made were the most effective engines of war that were employed. Lat. : heraldi enim pro tor mentis hellieis erant. The history of the word ordna)ice is peculiar, and somewhat like that of the word artillery. It is the French ordonna/iee, and was at first applied to the ordinaty men of arms of France when formed into cer- tain companies under particular orders by King Charles VH in 1444. These men must be archers, and the bow being in mediaeval warfare tlie most potent arn^, the name at first applied to bowmen, came after the introduction of cannon to be used for those engines. Artillery, used of bows and arrows, as in i Sam. xx. 40, " And Jonathan gave his artillery unto his lad," and in i Mace. vi. 51, has undergone a similar change of application. 9. Sir Thomas Broughton. He was of Brougliton in Lancashire. Afterwards he was induced to join Lambert Simnel's party in 1487, and is said by some to have been slain at Stoke, by others to have escaped and lived in concealment with a retainer of his family in West- morland, and to have died without issue in 1495. His property was added to the possessions of the house of Stanley l)y Henry VH [Itine- rary of Lancashire, p. 322). 14. despaired and dispersed. There may frequently be lound in Bacon's English traces of the influence of Euphuism in his emjiloyment of alliteration. A like tendency is to be found in much of the language of this period, and is very perceptible in the diction of the Book of Common Prayer. For another instance see p. 22, 1. 24, refresh and NOTES. 241 reflect ; also p. 26, 1. 30, If the great ones were in Jvrwardncss the people were in fury. Examples may be found in every two or three pages. 15. upon vie2i) of their privilege in the King's Bench, i. e. When the judges of the King's Bench had enquired whether the Sanctuary at Colnham was sufficient protection for such a crime as theirs, Lat. inspectd ejus loci chartd privilegii per Judices de Banco regis. When the judges were first consulted by the King whether Colnham had the privilege of a sanctuary, they replied that it was hard to give an opinion on a matter which they would afterwards have to decide judicially. This was the reason why the point was argued before all the judges, when the claim of sanctuary was rejected. 18. Tyburn, a place in London at v/hich felons were generally executed. 24. in honour of the British race... named Arthur. The famous King Arthur to whom allusion here is made was the son of King Uther Pendragon, and Igerna, a lady celebrated for her beauty, and who had foi-merly been the wife of Gorlois duke of Cornwall. Arthur was crowned King at the age of fifteen at Silchester by St Dubricius, and is celebrated as the hero of a long series of conquests, many of which are doubtless fabulous, but, as is intimated in the text, the marvellous history of this king has a substratum of truth. For a full knowledge of the many legends connected with him the student should read the Mort d' Arthur of Sir Thomas Malory, now accessible in the Globe series. 26. Britains, i. e. people of Britain. Bacon's orthography is here retained to prevent confusion, as in the text Britons always means people of Brittany. 30. prejudge, i. c. entertain a prejudice against, doom prematurely. The* verb has well-nigh died out, but its noun prejudice remains. The verb is found Reliq. Wotton, p. 576: "Yet I will not anticipate or prejudge mine own mishaps." Bacon's Latin is tnale ominantur. P. 22, line 2. it hath fallen out often, i. e. there have been frequent instances of persons assuming a false name and character to gain a king- dom, as Bacon repeats on the next page. In ancient times the most well-known instance is that of the usurper Smerdis. He was a Magian named Oropastes, and after Cambyses King of Persia had murdered his brother and heir presumptive Smerdis, this impostor assumed the name of the murdered prince, and succeeded to the kingdom for a brief period. See Herod, in. c. 6r. In modern times the most conspicuous instances have been those of this reign of Henry VII. 7. green in his estate, i. e. inexperienced in his new position as King. This metaphorical use of the word was common and classical enough in Shakespeare's time. Cf. Ant, and Cleop. i. 5. 74, " My salad days. When I was green in judgement." The Latin text has novus in regno sua. II. affected, clung to with liking. Hence the noun affection, which B. H. 16 242 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. remains, though the verb has nearly passed out of use in this sense. The Latin "hzs prosequi. Cf. Shaks. Cym. v. 5, 37, "First she confessed she never loved you, only Affected greatness got by you, not you : Married your royalty." 16. the co7'onation. This took place after an unaccountably long delay at Westminster, on the feast of St Catharine (Nov. •25), 1487. On the previous Friday the queen went in a triumphant procession by water from Greenwich to the tower of London. There was a grand corona- tion banquet afterwards in Westminster Hall. In the Mat. for Hist, of Hen. VII there is much more notice of the expenditure on the corona- tion than on the marriage of the Queen. The two following extracts from pp. 253, 2 = 4 may suffice as speci- mens. "Memorandum, that ther is due and owing unto John Bromhall, joynour, of London for canapye staves and in the tymber work of ii cherez (chairs) of estate, of hym boughte, ayenste [against] the coro- nacion of our souverayne lady the queue, the somme of xxuij^" "Memorandum that there is due and owing unto William Rowthe- welle, mercer, of London, for skarlet by hym delyvered unto the Kynges grete warderobe ayenst the coronacion of our souverayne lady the queue the somme of ^^54. \i. 9." The last item would represent a sum of more than six hundred pounds of our present money. 70. r/<7j-£'/j' = secretly. The T^at. h'x^ claiiculum. For this sense cf. Shaks. Romeo, v. 3. 255, " Meaning to keep her closely at my cell." P. 23, line 2. had to his pupil. For this use of the preposition to where we should now s^y for or as; cf. Judges xvii. 13: "Then said Micah, Now know I that the Lord will do me good, seeing I have r. Levite to my priest." 4. well favoured, i.e. of good looks. Cf. Gen. xxxix. 6: "Joseph was a goodly person, and well favoured." ID. in the manage — 2iS the plan Avas being carried out, in the pro- cess. The Latin is inter rem agendam cottsilium mutavit. I4. person. From Latin persona; which originally meant a mask with a mouthpiece contrived as a speaking-trumpet to aid the actor in making himself heard, [pei- through, and sonare—io sound): then any assumed character. 19. drunk 7vith nervs and /rt'/X' = excited by fresh events and public rumours. ■20. hath no appcarance=^oes not seem at all likely to occur. An attempt like this appears on the face of it improbable. Lat. viinime videtur probabile. P. 24, line ^. on the mother s side. His mother being the daughter of the Earl of Warwick and Salisbury the Kmg-maker. The son of Clarence received one part of his grandfather's title, the daughter, the Countess of Salisbury (who afterwards married Sir Richard Pole and one of whose sons became Cardinal Pole), the other. NOTES. 243 13. Qiiccn dowager, i.e. Elizabeth the widow of Edward IV. She had lived at court up to this time. Lingard (iv. 136 noie) suspects that the whole story, told in the text of the arrest of the Queen dowager, has no other foundation than the fact that for the three or four last years of her life Queen Elizabeth chose to live in retirement at Bermondsey. This is the more probable from what Bacon says below, that there was no legal proceeding taken for her seclusion. 15. withdrawing-chaiiibcr. This form is the original of the modern a''nz7£;/>?cr.;-^^;;^ = 'withdra wing-room, but by aphoeresis the first syllable has disappeared. 18. and^vas = 2iXi^ she was. See note on p. 6. 1. 28. 23. nor no more. Such instances of double negatives are not uncommon in the language of this period. See p. 71, 1. 6, and note there. 26. rt/ ///j/^r;7= using him as their tool and instrument. The in- fmitive to make way depends on the clause it was the meaning of the better and sager sort. They intended to use Lambert as a means to overthrow the king, but did not intend to crown their idol. 31. Bermondsey. This was a nunnery of the Cluniac order, founded in 1082, by Alwinus Child, a citizen of London. It was connected with the monastery of St Saviour's, Bermondsey. See Dugdale's Monasticon, Vol. I. p. 639. 32. (f/(75^ — secret. See note on p. 22, 1. 20. The Latin has con- silium ostiis clans is habit am. P. 25, line 10. many clergymen. The clergy were exempt from temporal jurisdiction, by reason of a privilege called "benefit of clergy." This privilege was not entii-ely abolished till 1828, and was originally devised to shield from civil penalties all who could plead their clerkship {privilegiiun clericale), and in an age of very general ignorance all were held to be clerks who could read. Indeed lo such a length had the claim been allowed that the ability to repeat a single verse of the Psalter (Ps. li. i) was held sufficient proof of a man's clerkship, and this verse was hence called in common phrase the neck- verse, because the know- ledge of it saved the culprit's neck from the halter : see Sir Walter Scott's Lay of the Last Minstrel, Canto I, Stanza xxiv. "Letter nor line know I never a one Wer't my neck-verse at Hairibee." Hairibce was the place on the Scotch border at which prisoners taken in the border feuds were wont to be executed. See additional Notes. 13. Stoke- field. The battle of Stoke was fought 16 June, 1487. For the family connection of the Earl of Lincoln, see Table in notes p. 230. 20. it was voiced, i.e. noised abroad. Cf. Shaks. Timon, iv. 3. 8r, "Is this the Athenian minion whom the world Voiced so regardfully ? " 28. it pieced better = \S2A a more apt arrangement, and suited the circumstances of the supposed escape of the Earl of Warwick. 16 -2 244 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. P. 26, line 2. affection to the house of York. Among the English settlers in Ireland the partisans of the house of York had maintained a decided ascendancy ever since the administration of Richard duke of York in that island in the reign of Henry the Vlth. The Butlers alone had dared to unsheathe the sword in favour of the Lancastrians. Richard duke of York was lord lieutenant in Ireland from 1449 — 145^. (Beatson's Political Index, ill. 295). 15. Ireland. At the commencement of the reign of Henry VII, half Louth, half Dublin, half Meath and half Kildare were the only parts of Ireland which could be said to be really subject to the Englisli law. This district was called the "Pale." Outside these limits, the house of Fitzgerard (or Fitzgerald), sometimes spoken of as the Gerald- ines, exercised a rude supremacy in Leinster and Munster, the O'Briens in Clare, the Butlers in Kilkenny, and the O'Neils and O'Donnells in the north. 18. Thomas Fitz-Gerald. His first appointment as Lord Deputy was in 147S. P. 27, line 6. had said enough for them, i.e. there was no need to regard the claim of these daughters, as by the act of Richard III in setting them aside their claim had been shown to be easily disposed of. 26. Shene (now Richmond), a favourite residence of Henry VII, who, when it was destroyed by fire, built the present palace of Rich- mond. P. 28, line 31. a distressed suitor. \Vhen Edward IV visited the duchess of Bedford at Grafton, Elizabeth, the widow of Sir John Gray, and daughter of the duchess, seized the opportunity to appeal to the King for a reversal, in favour of her children, of the attainder of her husband who had fallen in fighting on the Lancastrian side at the second battle of St Albans. P. 29, line I. Kings flight, i.e. when Edward IV was obliged to flee, and Henry VI was restored in 1470. At that time Queen Eliza- beth took refuge in the sanctuary at Westminster. 5. much = \ery. For an example of much thus used as qualifying an adjective, cf. Shakespeare, Troilus, iv. i. 45, ..."I fear We shall be much unwelcome." 6. her 07vn kindred. Richard Wydville was created Karl of Rivers in 1466; Anthony Wydville, his eldest son. Lord Scales in 1469; and many other promotions of the families of Gray and Wydville occur in the reign of Edward IV. 10. lord Hastings. William, Lord Hastings of Ashby-de-la- Zouche, put to death by Richard duke of Gloucester in 1483. 14. her brother beheaded. Lord Rivers, beheaded, at Pontefract in 1483, by order of the duke of Gloucester. 26. Queen's College in Cambridge, really founded by Queen Mar- garet of Anjou, wife of Henry VI, in 1448, but refounded by Queen Elizabeth wife of Edward IV, in 1465. Grafton adds to his account of the foundation : '* Queens College, a name surely meet for such a place NOTES, ' 245 wherein scholars diligently studying in all doctrine and sciences, prove excellent clerks and come to great honours." P. 30, line 16. ceremony of a procession. As the procession was made to the cathedral of St Paul's, it might be looked upon as a reli- gious act, and if it were made with a mere pretender in the procession would be a sort of profanation of religion. ' 26. John Earl of Lincoln. See the genealogical table notes p. 230. P. 3 1 , line I . incompetent pretexts = groundless reasons . 16. refrain the business ^\io\d. back from the undertaking. We generally say 'refrain from.' For an example without this preposition see Shakespeare, 3rd pt. Hen. VI. 2. 11. no : ..." Fur scarce I can refrain The execution of my big-swoln heart Upon that Clifford." 24. leaving a correspondence = arranging for a means of communi- cation. P. 32, line 2. Charles, surnamed the Hardy. This duke of Bur- gundy {le 'J\'fneraire), to whom Margaret the younger daughter of Richard duke of York became the second wife, died 1477 (in the battle of Nancy), leaving an only daughter, Mary, who was married afterwards to Maximilian, King of the Romans, and the two children mentioned in the text, Philip and Margaret, were Maximilian's children. 26. Martin .Swart. Ot this captain little more can be said than is found in the text. ^- 3.^, l"^e 8. upon far better cards. The Latin is copiis multo majoribiis instructi, furnished with far more abundant resources. 26. and in affection^ i.e. were [jossessed with desire. Lat. mnlta cupiditate feretrantur. P. 34, line 21. kept an dV7r=was disposed to listen kindly and re ceive him. Lat. aiirem ei benignam reservare. 31. Walsingham in Norfolk, famous for the shrine of the Virgin Mary. There is an amusing account of a visit made to this shrine by Erasmus, given in his Colloquy of the Religious Filgrifnage. P. 35, line I. Cambridge. There is a mention of this visit in Leland's Collectanea, iv. 209, where it is said the King went from Cam- bridge by Huntingdon and Northampton to Coventry, and kept the feast of St George at the last-named town. See Cooper's Annals, I- ^33- 3. Fouldrey, in the southern extremity of Furncss in Lancashire, called by Grafton "The pyle of Fowdrey." 9. Earl of Oxford. ' This was John de Vere, who having suffered attainder in 1461, was restored in 1485, and made Admiral of England, Ireland and Acquitaine. See additional Notes. II. for discovery, to spy out the position of the foe. Lat. ad has- titim res explorandas. 18. personate, to cause a good impression concerning their King. Lat. ut regis sui dec us tuerentur. 246 HISTORY OF KIXG HENRY VIL 28, their ai-my^ i.e. the army of Simnel and his supporters. P. 36, line 4. past retract = gon& beyond withdrawal. The noun is not common, the French form n/reai having soon supplanted the more Latin form of the word. 15. missives, letters of summons. Shakespeare always uses this word of messe7tgers. Cf. Macbeth, i. V. 7, "While I stood rapt in the wonder of it came missives... who all-hailed me." 18. Earl of Shreivsbiiry. This was George Talbot son of John, late earl of Shrewsbury. He had been a ward of the crown and licence of entry on his inheritance was granted to him in Nov. 1485. lord Strange, i.e. George Stanley, son of Thomas Stanley, step- father to Henry VH, on which account in grants made to him George Stanley is sometimes called the King's brother. See Mat. for Hist, of Hen. VII (Rolls Series), p. 296. -27. comviodity — w^Q., advantage. The word is common in this sense in Shakespeare. It occurs several times in a speech of the Bas- tard Faulconbridge, King John, ii. 2 ; the last words of which are " Since kings break faith upon commodity, Gain be my lord ! for I will worship thee." P. 37, line 4. tJiree battles, i.e. three divisions. Gf. Hen. V. iv. 3- 69, " The French are bravely in their battles set, And will with all expedience charge on us." 15. skein, a kind of knife or dagger used by the Irish and the Highlanders. Gaelic sgian. P. 38, line 7. ?nattaci7ia (Italian) is a pantomime, a mockery or satire. Lat. ludibrium. 19. ^«^m(f= contrivance, plot. Cf. Shakespeare, Othello, I v. 2. 219, *'Take me from this world with treachery, and devise engines for my life. " P. 39, line 5. martial laic, i.e. inflicting summary penalties, as is the custom in the army, where the offender is tried and punished imme- diately on the discovery of his offence. 6. commission, i. e. in the ordinary way of justice, by appointing commissioners to try, in due form of law, some of those who had offended. P. 40, line 4. at the Cross. At St Paul's Cross, where special sermons were preached in the open air while the congregation sat under the shrouds which were attached to the side of the church. In this place were preached some of Latimer's sermons before King Fdward the Vlth, and Dr Shaw's sermon already noticed, p. 10, 1. 7, and the note thereon. 17. Pope Innocent. Pope Innocent had granted a dispensation for the marriage, and therefore it might seem fit that he should be formally apprised of the coronation which placed the queen on the throne as queen consort with lier hu«band. NOTES. 247 18. Another JEneas, alluding to the storm-beaten cotuse of that hero before his arrival in Italy as recited in Virgil's -^neid. ^^. his ainbassador. This was the bishop of Imola, who was the legate of Innocent VIII. He first granted the needful dispensation, but Henry applied for another to the Pontiff himself, and the lapse of time which ensued, may perhaps explain this late acknowledgTiient of the ambassador's presence at the royal marriage. The dispensations are both given in extenso in Rymer, XII. pp. 294 and 313. 31. much ///at/t' t?/z = received with great honour. Cf. Shakespeare, Cor. \\. 5, 203, " Why, he is so made on here within, as if he were son and heir to Mars." knowing himself to be lazy and unprofitable. Tlie pontificate of Innocent VIII was a time of great depravity, in which it was said that immunity from all punishment was to be bought, if only a sufficient price were offered. The feuds of the Colonna and Orsini factions were distracting Rome, and in 1485 the Pope increased the disorders by allowing all who had been banished for whatever cause to return. In consequence Rome became the haunt of villains of every kind, who eagerly flocked to avail themselves of the papal clemency. Robbery and muriler were frequent ; churches were plundered of their plate and ornaments; every morning's light discovered in the streets the bodies of men who had been assassinated during the night. After a time the Pope found it necessary to withdraw his clemency and banish offenders, but the spirit of his administration was sarcastically expressed by one who said, "God willeth not the death of a sinner, but rather that he should pay and live." Such a Pope deserves even stronger language than is used by Bacon. P. 41, line 3. sanctuary. According to the ancient customs of Eng- land, sanctuary denoted an asylum or place privileged for the safeguard of the lives of men guilty of capital crimes. Different degrees of pro- tection were afforded according to the character of the grant by which each sanctuary was established. Down to the time of Henry VIII all churches and churchyards were sanctuaries. It was required that the sanctuary-man should within forty days of his taking sanctuary go in sackcloth and declare his offence to the coroner. After which he made a solemn oath to abjure the realm, and to leave by the nearest port assigned to him. In his journey to the sea-side, which was to be made with a cross in his hand, he had the privilege of a sanctuary man. The abuses of these asylums had been very great, and were in some degree abated by the bull mentioned in the text. The Acts 27 Hen. VIII. c. 19, and 32 Hen. VIII. c. 12, made further curtailments of the privi- leges, and by 21 Jas. I. c. 28, they were abolished altogether. 12. appoint /«■/// = appoint for himself. For an instance of this dative use cf. Shakespeare, Macb. v. 4. 4, "Let eveiy soldier hew him down a bough." 20. James the third. This monarch had long cherished a marked partiality for the English, so marked indeed that it formed the prin- cipal of the charges alleged against him by the rebels, who afterwards 248 . HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. deprived him of life. He had sent a deputation to assist at the corona- lion of Henry VH, 23. Sir Richard Edgcombe. In the Materials for Hist, of Henry VII there are numerous entries of grants to Sir Richard Edgcombe, two of which may be quoted, p. 19, Sep. 20, 1485, "Grant for life to Richard Edgecombe gent, of the office of one of the chamberlains of the receipt of the exchequer, or of one of the chamberlains of the exchequer (viz. that office which William Catesby lately had by grant from King Edward IV), together with the appointment and ordering of one of the ushers of the exchequer when a vacancy shall happen." The next entry quoted shews the value set on the services of this knight. 7 June, i486, }). 448, " Grant in tail male, to Richard Edgecombe Knt. (in considera- tion of services as well in the parts beyond the sea as in the Kingdom of England) of the castle, honour and lordship or manor of Totenesse, the lordship and manor of Corneworthy, the manors of Huesshe and Lodeswell with their members and appurtenances," &c. He was also on the same day appointed controller of the King's mines of silver within the counties of Devon and Cornwall. P. 42, line 8. spread estate, i. e. more extended in territory, by the recovery of the provinces mentioned below in line 1 3. P. 43, line 6. obnoxious, going back to one of the original meanings of the Latin word ancis was an impotent man sore diseased and well stricken in age, and had never an heir male, wherefore they determined by some means to compass the duchy of Brittany." Francis died in 1488. 18. what Tiient tipon it in example =how much evil would come of such an example. The Lat. has c^uam perniciosi exempli res sit. 20. comfort = ^\.rQng\\\Qu, support with their aid. This is the origi- nal force of the word, to give material support. Cf. Wickliffe's trans- lation of Is. xli. 7, " And he coumfortide hym with nailes that it shulde not be moved." For an example closely resembling that in the text, see Shaks. Tit. And. ii. 3. 209, " Why dost not comfort me and help me out?" P. 45, line 3. howsoever it stood for the point of obligatioii, i.e. under whatever degree of obligation King Henry might be to the duke of Brittany. II. when time was, i. e. when the opportunity offered. 24. daugJiter of Maximilian. This was Margaret the daughter of Maximilian and of his first wife, Mary of Burgundy. She was at this time living at the court of France, and being educated as the future wife of Charles. She was sent back to her father before Charles' marriage with Anne of Brittany. NOTES, 249 27. kingdom of Naples. The ground on which Charles VIII rested his claim to the Kingdom of Naples was that it had been be- queathed by the last count of Provence to Lewis XI King of France, and the conquest of Naples was to be a step towards the recovery of Constantinople and Jerusalem from the infidels. 28. hither parts, the parts nearest to England. P, 46, line I. reception., recovery. A word due entirely to the Latinized character imparted to the f>nglish of this period by the nume- rous translations of the classics. 5. most obliged. When Henry (as earl of Richmond) ^A•as attainted by Edward IV, he fled with his uncle Jasper, and intending to make for France was driven by stress of weather into Brittany, where he lived till the death of Edward IV. The duke of Brittany not only sheltered him, but promised his aid to the scheme for putting Henry on the throne of England. Charles VIII also supplied him with French auxiliaries, who fought for him on the field of Bosworth. Hence the expression in ihe text. 26. Frejich, i. e. French King. This kind of ellipsis is not very common. But cf. the use oi Dane for Danish King, Hamlet, i. i. 15, " Liegemen to the Dane." P. 47, line 2. ^i7;r/t'^= gained as a prize, conquered. Cf. Shaks. Cor. IV. 7. 27, '"'■Lieut. Sir, I beseech you, think you he'll carry Rome? Auf. All places yield to him ere he sits down." 6. a young King. Charles VIII ascended the throne of France in 1483 at the age of fourteen, so that he was now about eighteen. The duke of Orleans was about ten years his senior. The young King was sickly and almost deformed and feeble in mental power, but yet had his imagination filled with visions of crusading exploits and renown. 1 6. Christopher Urswick. Dr Christopher Urswick was sometime master of King's Hall in Cambridge. He was chaplain to the King's mother, and was employed by Henry as his own chaplain, great almoner and ambassador. 18. churchman., an ecclesiastic. Cf. Shakespeare, Merry Wives, 1 1. 3. 49, "Though we are justices and doctors and churchmen, we have some salt of our youth in us. " P. 48, line I. straightzoays, not now so usual a form as straightway, but the same double sets of compounds exist with way as with ward ; so that we have alway and always, and straightway and straightways side by side. See note on p. 10, 1. 20. 6. m ^«o pounds, and that he gave gold rings and liveries of cloth. Festivities of so gorgeous a character might well admit of being presided over by the king in person. Bacon notices a second feast (p. 197), where though mention is not expressly made of the presence of the King, yet the event seemed of enough importance to be included in the list of marked occurrences. 16. King Charles had conquered the realm of Naples. Charles VIII had been encouraged to make good his claim to the throne of Naples by Ludovico Sforza, called, from his swarthy complexion, the Moor, who had usurped the government of Milan from his nephew John Galeazzo Sforza. The duchess of Milan, who was a granddaughter of the reign- ing king of Naples, appealed to her family to assist her in restoring her husband's power. It was in fear of the Neapolitan intervention in Milan that Ludovico invited the French king into Italy. Charles readily con- sented to an expedition which fell in with his own views. He assembled his army at Lyons, and, after some slight delays in his course, entered Rome 31st Dec. 1494- The Pope (Alexander VI) was compelled to pro- mise Charles the investiture of the kingdom of Nai)les, and placed host- ages in the king's hand, among the rest his own son, Caesar Borgia (who however speedily absconded in the dress of a groom), until the com- pletion of the conquest. Success attended the further progress of the invasion. The Neapolitans hardly offered any resistance. Alphonso II, who had but lately succeeded his father Ferdinand I, abdicated as soon as the French approached, and fled to Sicily, where he shortly after died. His son, Ferdinand II, finding himself deserted by his troops and threatened by an insurgent population, withdrew in his turn precipitately from Naples, and Charles and his troops entered the city 22nd Feb. 1494 — 5. But the conquest, so easily won, intoxicated Charles, and he gave himself up to every kind of voluptuous enjoyment, and totally neglected to secure and consolidate his authority in his newly acquired dominions. Public offices and dignities were distributed exclusively among his French subjects, while the native aristocracy were treated with coldness and disdain, so that feelings of bitter hos- tility were quickly engendered against him among all parties. Two months of frivolity and maladministration had scarcely passed before Charles was made aware of the league mentioned in the text, the parties to which are enumerated on the next page (132). Ludovico, who brought in Cliarles, had grown alarmed, and devised this alliance among the powers of Europe to cut off the retreat of the French from Italy. The compact between the powers was signed at Venice on March 31st, and Charles was informed of it through his envoy at that place, Philip de Commines. He at once determined to evacuate Naples. He departed from that city on the 30th of May, leaving one half of his army as a garrison under his cousin, the Count of Montpensier, whom he appointed viceroy. The retiring troops rapidly traversed the Roman states and gained the Tuscan border, and finding that Florence (now under the rule of Peter de Medici) was in a state of revolutionary com- motion turned aside to Pisa and left a garrison there. Their road NOTES. 279 to Parma was obstructed by Gonzaga Marquis of Mantua and the allied troops, but the French, though in much inferior numbers, defeated their opponents at the village of Fornovo. They then pressed forward to Vercelli, where Charles was joined by the Duke of Orleans. He nego- tiated a peace with Ludovico Sforza, which left the latter in peaceable possession of Milan (John Galeazzo had died while Charles was in Italy), and so passing the Alps, by the same route along which they had advanced fourteen months before, the French reached Lyons on 9th Nov. 1495. 27. faction of the Angeovines. The kingdom of Naples had be- longed to the house of Anjou, and had only been bequeathed to the French King in the time of Lewis XI, by the last Angeovin prince, Charles, count of Maine and Provence. Of course all favourers of the old line were eager for vengeance on the Aragonese dynasty, and had expected that the French would not treat them in the same m.anner as they treated the partizans of that dynasty. 30. Ostia. At the mouth of the Tiber. It was recovered for the Pope by the "great Spanish captain," Gonsalvo de Aguilar, who was the commander on behalf of Ferdinand II. P. 132, line 7. Ferdinando the yoiingdr. Ferdinand II. died (Sept. 7, 1496) soon after the recovery of his kingdom, and on his death his dominions fell to his uncle Frederick. 16. Augustino Barbadico. He was doge of Venice from 1495 to 1502. 20. a fee of the church. The King of Naples was counted a vassal of the pope, and so if the liege-lord were a party to the treaty, his feu- datories would be included in its provisions. 22. Ccciie, duchess of York. She was the daughter of Ralph Nevile, earl of Westmoreland. The three princes crowned were Ed- ward IV, Edward V, and Richard III. The four murdered were Edmund earl of Rutland her second son, who is said to have been mur- dered in cold blood after the battle of Wakefield, at the age of seven- teen ; George, earl of Clarence, put to death by Edward IV ; and the two princes Edward V and Richard, duke of York, murdered in the Tower. 27. parliament. This parliament met October 14th, 1425. P. 133, line 4. a law of a strange Jiatiire. This act (11 Hen. VII. c. i) exempts from the penalties of treason those who shall henceforth serve a de facto King. Bacon calls this act magnanimous rather than provident, because of the provision which it made for the safety of all those who should henceforth fight on the winning side. If, therefore, some pretender should rise up and by the power of the sword dethrone Henry, his adherents were by this act freed from all penalties if ever Henry should be able to recover his throne. 17. The quotation is from ii. Sam. xxiv. 17. 32. conclude itself =%t\. limits to its future action by any precedent ordinance. P. 134, line 13. a shoj-ing or nnder-propping act. This act (11 Hen. VII. c. 10) by providing a means whereby a subsidy or benevo- 28o HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII Icnce may be levied, gave to a benevolence a sort of statutory recogni- tion and countenance. ■21. The attai?it: this was to punish the jury who in any civil action had given a false verdict ; which false verdict had before this act been regarded as a final settlement, and the party aggrieved by it had been without remedy. The act is ii Hen. VII. c. 21. 26. the indictors, i. e. the grand jury, who find the bill. 32. favour of life. In capital cases the juries ought not to be subjected to the risk of pains and penalties, lest they should feel unwilling to give due weight to any extenuating circumstances, which might lessen the gravity of the offence which they were trying. P. 135, line 2. not quit the charge, i.e. the entire sum at issue would not pay the expense of proceeding with an action of attaint. 4. been advanced, i.e. received lands. Lat. ad terras proviotce. By this act (ir Hen. VII. c. 20) if any woman had an estate in dower, or for term of life, or in tail, any alienation by such wife of the inherit- ance of her deceased husband is declared void. 10. charitable. This law (ir Hen. VII. c. 12) is so called because it regards it as better that the poor man should be able to vex than that he should seem to suffer a wrong by being unable to sue. 21. watching of beacons upon the coasts, &c. There are some interesting memoranda published in the last Report (Fifth) of the His- torical AfSS Commission, taken from the records of the corporation of New Romney, in reference to this period, e. g. p. 548, " Paid two men watching by the sea shore 4d. " p. 549, "Paid a serjeant of master Ponynges carrying a mandate of our Lord the King as to Peter War- bekke 8d." This last is dated 1497. 33. J^ifig of Scotland. James IV, who began to reign in 1488 and was killed at Flodden-field in 15 13. P. 136, line 14. into Scotland. He arrived at Stirling 20th Nov., 1495- 27. niay be pleased. See note to Dedication, line i. The speech here given is taken almost entirely from Speed. P. 137, line 25. The allusions are to Daniel vi. 22, ii. Kings xi. 2, and Genesis xxii. 12. P. 139, line 21. in the person of Henry the sixth. Alluding to the succour rendered to Queen Margaret, who 1464 was in Scot- land when making preparations previous to the battle of Hedgeley Moor. P. 140, line II. Lady Catharine Gordon, daughter of George Gordon, earl of Huntley. She was afterwards married to Sir Matthew Cradock, and was buried with him in the church of Swansea in Wales, where their tomb still exists. P. 1 4 2, line 8. certain of our sisters. Beside Elizabeth, wife of Henry VII, the other daughters of Edward IV who married were (i) Cecilia who married John Lord Wells, (2) Anne who was wife of Thomas Howard, duke of Norfolk, and (3) Catharine who became wife of William Courtney, earl of Devonshire. 9. sister of the earl of Warwick. This was Margaret countess of NOTES. 281 Salisbury, who was afterwards beheaded 27"May, 1541. Imhoff, {Reg. Mag. Brit. Hist. Geneal.) page 31, says that she was married by Henry VII to a person below her in degree, a Welshman named Sir Richard Pole, afterwards made Knight of the Garter and Chamberlain to Arthur Prince of Wales. 13. Most of the names here given which have not been already noticed are of persons who were among the early adherents of Henry VII, and to whom some of his first grants were made. The Lovel meant here is probably Thomas Lovel, Speaker of the House of Com- mons, elected 8 Nov. 1485 (see Mat. for Hist, of Hen. VII. p. 113). One William Smith was keeper of the hanajier of the chancery {ibid. p. 16). Master Oliver King was archdeacon of Oxford (/<^?V/. pp. 192, 356), and was one of the commissioners appointed to meet the commissioners of Charles VIII (3 Dec. 1485) to agree upon and arrange a truce be- tween England and France, and he was on a second commission appointed to take possession in the King's name of Calais, Rysebank, Guysnes, and Hammes. David Owen was chief carver to the King {ibid. pp. 233, 242, 278) and had a grant of £^0 a year for life. He is styled "the King's beloved Knight." John Turbervill, Knt. is [ibid. pp. 6r, 64) constable and keeper of Corffe castle in Dorsetshire, and also coroner and marshal of the King's household. Sir William Tyler is appointed a commissioner and controller of the King's mines of tin, lead, copper, gold and silver in England and Wales [ibid. p. 317). He is also made Constable of the Castle of Sudeley, and has other distinc- tions. Richard Cholmondely is made guardian of the possessions of the late John Eggerton during the minority of his heir {jbid. p. 9). Empson, no doubt the afterwards notorious Richard Empson. He was made attorney general of the duchy of Lancaster on 13th Sept. 1485 {ibid. p. 549). James Hobart is a member of an important commission ap- pointed to enquire into the extent and other particulars of the English possessions in France {ibid. p. 356). A pardon is granted to John Cutte of London, gentleman, on 29th Nov. 1485, for all manner of offences committed before that date {ibid. p. 187). No doubt the offences were against the house of York, and so were merits in Henry's eyes. Henry Wyot is made bailiff of the lordship of Methwold, parcel of the duchy of Lancaster {ibid. p. 581). In Speed and in the MS of Bacon's Life of Hen. VII, which Mr Spedding has used, the list of names is somewhat longer. Sir Charles Somerset, who was captain of the King's guard (see Mat. Hist, of H. VII. p. 327) is mentioned. Also Robert Lytton, who has an interest in a licence of alienation granted 3rd Dec. 1485 {ibid. p. 193) and Gyl- forde (most likely Sir Richard Gyldforde) who was early employed in Henry's service {ibid. 229, 232, 402). P. 144, line 19. do all men to wit, i.e. proclaim unto all men, make all men to know. Wit is the infinitive mood of the old verb to wit. P. 145, line I. edify with, an unusual expression for to prez>ail with, to moz-e and influence. Lat . permovit. 3. the company he came in. The feuds between the inhabitants of 282 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. the border land between England and Scotland had created a permanent spirit of dislike between the peoples of the two countries. 5. rode. This word which is more commonly spelt 7-oad presents a curious instance of change of meaning. At the present day it is used only in the sense of a highway or well marked path. But, as may be seen from Macaulay {Hist. Vol. I, p. ^89), roads of this character were very uncommon in the days when Bacon wrote and for some time after ; and the word road was employed as raid (a dialectic variety of the same word) is now used, to signify ati inroad. See i. Saml. xxvii. 10, where Achish, anxious that David should spread havoc among all the enemies of the Philistines, inquires "Whither have ye made a road to-day?" meaning, Against whom has your assault been directed? 30. babies, i.e. dolls: cf. Macbeth ill. 4. 106, "The ^a/n/ of a girl." The Lat. is, circa piipas rixari. 31. Bacon having mentioned by anticipation in the previous clause the attack on Northumberland, now alludes to it, though it has not yet taken place. P. 146, line 8. good order: the Latin explains tins as meaning good contributions ; bonis contributionibns corroborata. ro. for ivant of vent, i.e. because all exportation had ceased: yet they bought up all the native produce though it had to lie dead in their hands. \2. Viscount IVells. This was John, Lord Wells, the first husband of Cecilia, the second daughter of Edward IV. He was theivfore the King's brother m law. He was made by Henry, steward of the lands of the Duke of Buckingham during the minority of Edward his son and heir. Kendal, prior of St John's, i.e. Sir John Kendal, Prior of the order of St John of Rhodes (see Gairdner's Letters, Richd. HL and Hen. Vn. i. 402, and ii. 87, 104, 318, 323 — 325). 15. the archduke. The archduke's commissioners were received in London on Candlemas Eve (i Feb.) 1495 — 6, and the treaty was concluded in the following Aj^ril. (Spedding). 16. Lord Bevers. Styled by Philip in a letter given in Gairdner's Letters, &c. (ii. p. d^ "Our wellbeloved and faithful cousin, lieutenant and governor-general of our country of Artois, and admiral of the sea, the Lord de Beures. " P. 147, line 10. parlia))ie)it. This met on i6th January, 1496 — 7, and in it there were voted supplies for the Scottish war. 25. fifteenths. This should be, according to the name, a fifteenth part of men's goods, but it had long before this time been fixed at a definite sum, much less than that amount. 26. iron at the top, &c. , i.e. there was a great shew of arming and preparation for a fight, but generally the result was that the gold and silver was coffered by the King. P. 148, line 1. exacting upon the trade, i.e. imposing exactions on all goods which came under their hands, as most of the merchandise of England would do. 8. subsidy. This was granted 13th Feb. 1496—7. NOTES. 283 32. escuage. Bacon in his Index Vocahdorinn explains this, as •* the obligation by which the King's tenants were bound to serve in the wars against the Scots." P. 149, line 15. joint and several pratings, addresses made to the people sometimes in assemblies, and sometimes singly and pri- vately. 26. ever at pleasiire, i.e. always ready to go where the people please. 31. provost of Perin. The Latin says Propositus Perkini= Perkin's provost. But Hall and Grafton both give Peryn. 32. Lord Audley. This was James Touchet, 14th Lord Audley. He is mentioned in Gairdner's Letters and papers HI ustrative of the reigns of R. ILL aftd H. VLI, vol. ii. 326, as one of the adherents of Perkin Warbeck. He had served with Henry in France. See Dugdale's Baronage, voL ii. 29. P. 150, line I. popular, i.e. hunting after popular favour. A not very common use of this word. 18. Earl of Kent. See notes on p. 100. 15. Lord Abergavenny. This was George Nevill, son of the Lord Abergavenny who died in the 7th year of Hen. VH. After his com- mand at Blackheath, this nobleman, in the 14th year of the King, was imprisoned on suspicion of favouring Edmund de la Pole, Earl of Suf- folk, but no guilt being proved against him. he was set free, and came into great favour both with this King and his successor. He died in 27 Hen. VHL (15.^5). See Dugdale, i. 310. 19. Lord Cohham. This is John Brooke. In the seventh year of the King's reign this nobleman was in the expedition made into Flanders on behalf of Maximilian against the French. He was kins- man of his coadjutor Lord Abergavenny, having married the daughter of Edward Nevill, a former Lord Abergavenny. He died in 1506. 29. Blackheath. According to the old Chronicle so frequently cited by Mr Spedding this encampment took place on Friday, June i6th. P. 152, line I. ancient Indian emblem. The only explanation of this allusion which I have been able to find is in Plutarch's Life of Alex- ander the Great, chap. 65, in a dialogue between Calanus, one of the Indian wise men, and Alexander. In North's translation, the words are : "It is reported that this Calanus did shew Alexander a figure and similitude of his kingdom, which was this. He threw down before him a dry scare piece of leather, and then put his foot upon one of the ends of it. The leather being trodden down on that side rose up in all parts else; and going up and down withal still treading upon the sides of the leather, he made Alexander see that the leather being trodden down on the one side did rise up of all sides else, until such time as he put his foot in the midst of the leather, and then all the whole leather was plain alike. His meaning thereby was to let Alexander understand that the most part of his time he should keep in the midst of his country, and not to go far from it. " The idea here is exactly that contained in our text, though a dry skin, and not a bladder, is the emblem made use of. 284 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL 19. that it stood him upoit = \.t. that it was of the highest import- ance. Cf. for the expression Hamlet v. 2. 63, **Doth it not, thinks't thou, stand me now upon?" See also Abbot's Shakespearian Gram. p. 138. The preposition is to be closely kept to the verb. The phrase = It stands upon (is of import- ance) to me. 30. corners of horse. The Lat. has turmis aliquot equittim = son\e squadrons of cavalry. No doubt corners is due to the Lat. cormt, used frequently in this military sense. P. 153, line ir. St George's fields. The open nature of the country here at this time may be well seen in the map prefixed to Stow's Survey. 29. Tate, the lord ?nayor. John Tate (the younger) mercer, son of Thomas Tate of Coventry. 30. Shaw. Sir John Shaw. Haddon. Sir Richard Haddon. The King made this Mayor, Robert Shefield the Recorder, and both the Sheriffs Knights for their service against the rebels at Blackheath field. (vStow's Survey, vol. v. p. 126). P. 154, line 13. two and twentieth of June. This is the date given by Stowe. The old Chronicle however calls it the 17th, which is no doubt right. The 22nd of June, 1497, fell on a Thursday. (Spedding). 20. as at the receit. The Latin explains rcbelles intaxeptui-i, to in- tercept the rebels. 27. The army, i. e. the body of the rebels. P. 155, line 2. recovei-ed, here simply won, gained, with no indica- tion that he had been previously dispossessed of it. 10. cut in pieces. The Latin says devicti, conquered. 15. two thousand. Stowe says oddly three hundred. P. 156, line I. beheaded. On Wednesday, June 28th, (Old Chron. ) 3. at Tyburn. On Tuesday, June 27th. (Old Chron.) 10. and to take out, i.e. and (were permitted) to take out. The governing verb being supplied from the idea of the previous verb were pardoned. P. 157, line 26. tall soldiers, i.e. brave. For this use of -the word cf. Shakesp. Rich. IIL i. 4. 36, "Spoke like a tall fellow that respects his reputation." The Latin has militum fortissimorum. 33. doing good, i.e. producing any effect. P. 158, line 8. Aton, i.e. Ayton on the Eye in Berwickshire. 18. Peter Hialas, i.e. Peter D'Ayala. For notices of him and his mission (see Gairdner's Zif/^^rj, &c. ; Rich. IIL and Hen. VII. i. 118, 124; ii. 91. 365, 878). P. 159, line 9. heart. Here means /;7^(?, dignity. Ti. of. For of '\\\ this sense cf. supra, p. 64, 1. 13, and the note there. 15. /^/ = hesitate. The Lat. has non diibitabat. 33. The commissioners met ; 2X}&(S\ivs^ ^^\iiC\idXiZ.x\,y.i\\. 17). NOTES. 285 P. 161, line 29. Taking his leave. Perkin sailed from Scotland on July 6th, 1497. (See Tytler, iv. p. 385). After Perkin's departure the commissioners met again, and in the first instance agreed upon a truce for seven years. This was concluded Sept. 30, 1497. Soon after, the term of truce was extended to the lives of the two kings and a year after the death of the survivor. This was proclaimed in London on Dec. 5th next following. P. 162, line 6. cap of maintenance — sometimes called cap of state, one of the regalia granted by the Popes to the sovereigns of England. It was carried before the monarch at the coronation or on other occa- sions. In modern times such honours have been granted to private families. 7. Pope Innocent had done the like, in 1488. See Leland (vol. IV. p. 244). 10. palace of PauVs. This is called in the Latin palatium Episcopi Londo7iiensis. It was at the north-west corner of St Paul's Churchyard (see Maitland's Hist, of London, ii. 1172). 13. AUhalloxvs day. All Saints Day (Nov. ist). 17. greece. The Latin is super gi'adus, from which latter word greece is derived, passing through the French gre. Puttenham uses the word in the plural [Arte of Eng. Poesie, Arber's Reprints p. 52.) "Theatrum as much to say as a beholding place, which was also in such sort contrived by benches and greeces to stand or sit upon, as no man should empeach another's sight." P. 163, line 33. the blacksmith's town, i.e. where Michael Joseph had lived. P. 164, line 7. Richard the fourth. Bacon is here quoting from Speed, who is in error. Perkin's Scotch proclamation ran in the name of "Richard, by the grace of God, king of England, Lord of Ireland, Prince of Wales." ' The Latin translation has omitted the erroneous statement. See Mr Spedding's note. 15. besieged the city of Exeter. On Sunday, Sept. 17th. 21. the King, i.e.' Perkin, who called himself King Richard. P. 166, line 6. the eleventh hour, alluding to the parable of the labourers in the vineyard, Matt. xx. 9. 9. Sir Rice ap Thotnas. Made constable, lieutenant and steward of Brecknock in the King's first year, likewise chamberlain of South Wales. See Materials for Hist, of Hen. VII, pp. 105, 109. 12. The earl of Devonshire. William Courtney, Earl of Devon- shire, was the queen's brother-in-law, having married Catharine, a daughter of Edward IV. See Text, p. 194. 13. the Ca7'ews. For a notice of this family, distinguished in Devonshire since 1300 as the Carews of Haccombe, and one branch of which became earls of Totnes, see Lyson's Britannia, vol. vi. p. cxiv. the Fulfords, of Fulford, in the parish of Dunsford. This family can be traced back to the time of Richard I. See Lyson, as above, p. cxlv. 18. The duke of Buckingham, i.e. Edward Stafford. Seep. 18. 14, and note. 286 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. ^3. the proverb. I have not been able to discover the source of this proverb, which seems to imply that when all is easy, as in a down- hill journey, every small assistance is offered and will be of use. 16. raised his siege. On Monday, i8lh of September. P. 167, line 7. Beivdly, i.e. Bevvley, or Beaulieu. His flight took place on the 2ist September. P. 168, line II. entrance into Exeter. The King arrived here on October 7th. P. i6q, line 14. the Lord Darcy. This was Thomas, Lord Darcy, who succeeded his father in the 3rd year of Henry VH. He was one ot those lords who marched with I'homas, Earl of Surrey to the relief of Norham Castle when it was besieged by the Scots. Beside the commis- sion mentioned in the text he was made Constable of Bamborough Castle, and next year Captain of the town of Berwick, and Warden of the East and Middle Marches of Scotland. In the iSth year of Henry VH, Lord Darcy was one of the commissioners for receiving the oath of James IV of Scotland upon a treaty of peace. He flourished in the whole of this reign and in the next until the time of the Pilgrimage of Grace, when being, with the Archbishop of York, in the castle of Pontefract, he sur- rendered it to the rebels. For this he was found guilty of treason and beheaded on Tower Hill, June 20, 1539. ^\. treasure. The original return of the fines then levied is pre- served in the British Museum, See Ellis' Letters, istSer. Vol. i. p. 38. (Spedding.) P. 170, line 8. churtn. Murmur, noise, perhaps A. S. cyrm = a din, especially the noise of birds. The form char??!, occurs in this sense, but not ch7irm. See Halliwell's Diet. (s. v.). Mr Spedding prints chunnne. The 1622 edition has churme. The Latin translator evidently did not know what to do with it and so substitutes cum choro. 12. the Kin ^, i.e. to Perkin, who had called himself King Rich- ard IV. P. 171, line 7. a great fire. On the night of St Thomas Day (21st Dec.) about nine o'clock. 14. Sebastian Gabato (generally written in English, Cabot) son of John Cabot, was born at Bristol about 1477. He was employed by Henry VII in 1495, and in 1497 discovered what is now known as New- foundland. Both father and son were famous as navigators. Sebastian died in 1557 after a life of great adventure and success. 15. seen in, i.e. acquainted with, skilled in. Cf. More's Utopia (Pitt Press Series), p. 7, "In the knowledge of the Latin tongue, he was not so well sene as to be hable to judge of the finenes or coursenes of my translation." 1 7. Christophoriis Cohcinbus. Columbus saw the light on St Salva- dor on 3rd October, 1492. P. 172, line 3. Seneca's prophecy, alluding perhaps to what Seneca says of the Atlantic, Qttcest. Nat. iv. 2. Plato's antiquities. The substance of what Plato says, in his Timceus^ and in the Critias, is that the Atlantis was a large island in the Western Ocean situate opposite to the Straits of Gades (Gibraltar). There were NOTES, 287 other islands near it. Neptune settled in it with his ten sons, whose descendants reigned there for 9000 years. At length the island sank under water. For an account of all that has been written on the subject see Rees' Cyclopaedia, s. v. Atlantis. 9. bearing the King in hand, i.e. inducing the King to believe. Lat . Regi fidem faciens. 2^. King of Portugal. This was John II who reigned from 1481 to 1495. The great problem before the navigators of that day v/as a passage to India by sea. The Portuguese were seeking to solve it by the circumnavigation of Africa. Diaz had already (in 148 7) doubled the Cape of Good Hope, and Don John was so much taken up with the one project that he could not listen to the other proposal for crossing the Atlantic and reaching India by sailing westward. P. 173, line 14. quarrelled, this word, derived from Lat. qicerela, means in the first instance to bring a complaint against, or as here, to upbraid, or murmur against. Cf. Montagu against Selden (on Tithes) 427, "He quareleth the reading," ib. 516, "Except you can quarrell the translation." P. 1 74, line I r. Melross, \. e. Melrose in Roxburghshire. The abbey here, which is famous still as a magnificent ruin, was founded by King David I in 1136. 32. more than well disposed. There had been a commission, for treating on the subject of this match, granted by Henry in the summer of 1496. P. 175, line 3. a littie before Chi'istmas, Mr Spedding says. "I think this is a mistake." The former treaty (see pp. 160, 161 and notes) was published a little before Christmas, 1497. The treaty now in question, which contains the article concerning the letters commenda- tory (Rymer xii. 724), was not concluded till the 12th July, 1499. ^^ was ratified by James on the 20th at Strivelin, and immediately after, that is on the i ith September, a commission was granted to Bishop P^ox to treat of the marriage. 10. to lock in the borderers, i.e. to prevent those from coming into collision who had been in old times the cause of all the discords. 13 Edmund. He was christened 24 Feb. 1498-9 and died June 1 2th, 1500. 15. Charles the French King. Charles VIII died 7th April 1498. The news reached London in the same month. 20. all corners wen laid, i.e. every point was carefully watched. 22. hotise of Bethlehem. Hall gives a rather fuller description of this place which he says is "beside Richmond in Southrey" (i.e. Surrey). His flight took place on Saturday, June 9th, 1498, according to the old Chronicle, and he was placed in the stocks on the Friday next following. P. 176, line 5. read his confession. That the student may have an opportunity of comparing the style of Hall with that of Bacon, and noticing the advance made within so short a period in English prose composition, the confession of Perkin is subjoined as given in Hall's Chronicle. "It is to be knowen, that I was borne in the toune of 288 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. Turney in Flaunders, and my fathers name is John Osbeck, which sayd John Osbeck was comptroller of the sayde toune of Turney, and my mothers name is Katheryn de Faro. And one of my grauntsires upon my fathers side was named Diryck Osbeck which dyed, after whose death my grauntmother was maryed unto the withinnamed Peter Hamme, that was receaver of the forenamed toune of Turney, and deane of the botemen that rowe upon the water or ryver, called Leschelde. And my grauntsire upon my mothers side was Peter de Faro, whiche had in hys kepyng the keyes of the gate of sainct Jhons within the same toune of Turney. Also I had an uncle called master Jhon Stalyn, dwelling in the parish of sainct Pyas within the same toune, which had maried my suster, whose name was Jone or Jane, with whome I dwelled a certain ceason. And afterward I was led by my mother to Andwerp for to learne Flemmishe, in the house of a cousyn of myne, an officier of the said toune, called Jhon Stienbeck, with whome I was the space of halfe a yere. And after that I returned agayn to Turney, by reason of the warres that were in Flaunders. And within a yere folowing I was sent with a merchaunt of the sayd toune of Turney named Berlo, and his masters name Alexander, to the marte of And- warpe where I fell sycke, whiche sickenes contynued upon fy ve monethes. And the sayde Barlo set me to boorde in a skinners house, that dwelled beside the house of the English nacion. And by him I was from thence caryed to Barowe marte, and I lodged at the signe of the olde man, where I abode the space of two monethes. And after this the sayde Barlo set me with a merchaunt of Middelborough too servyce, for to leanie the language, whose name was Jhon Strewe, with whom I dwelled frome Christmas tyll Easter, and then I went into Portyngale, in the companye of Syr Edward Bramptones wyfe in a shype whiche was called the quenes shippe. And when I was come thether, then I was put in servyce to a knyghte that dwelled in Lusborne, whiche was called Peter Vacz de Cogna, with whome I dwelled a whole yere, whiche sayde knyght had but one eye. And because I desyred to see other countryes, I toke lycence of him, and then I put myself in servyce with a Bryton, called Pregent Mono, the which brought me with him into Ireland, and when we were there arrived in the toune of Corke, they of the toune, because I was arayed with some clothes of sylke of my saide maistres, came unto me and threeped upon me that I should be the duke of Clarence sonne, that was before lynie at Develyn. And foras- ' much as I denied it, there was brought unto me the holy evangelist and the Crosse by the Mayre of the toune, which was called Jhon le Wellen, and there in the presence of him and other I toke myne othe as the truth was, that I was not the foresaid dukes sonne, nor none of his blood. And after this came unto me an Englishman, whose name was Stephen Poytron, with one Jhon Water, and saide to me in swearing great othes that they knew wel that I was kynge Rychardes bastard sonne : to whome I aunswered with like othes that I was not. And then they advysed me not to be afearde, but that I should take it upon me boldely, and if I woulde so do they woulde aide and assist me with all their powre agaynst the kyng of England, and not only they, bu^ NOTES. 289 they were assured well that the erles of Desmond and Kyldare should do the same. For they forced not what party they toke, so that they might be revenged upon the kyng of England, and so against my will made me to learne English, and taught me what I should do and saye. And after this they called me duke of Yorke, second sonne of kynge Edward the fourth, because king Richardes bastard sonne was in the handes of the king of England. And upon this the said Jhon Water, Stephen Poytron, Jhon Tyler, Hughbert Burghe with many other as the foresayd Erles, entred into this false quarrell. And within shorte tyme after, the French king sent an Ambassadour into Ireland, whose name was Loyte Lucas, and master Stephen Fryan, to advertise me to come into Fraunce. And thence I went into Fraunce and from thence into Flaunders, and from Flaunders into Ireland and from Ireland into Scot- land, and so into England." ^^. Sir John Digby. Among the Privy Purse expenses is an item (Sept. 23rd 1494) "for Thomas Digby and four yomen riding to feche Long Roger." These were the persons employed by Sir John, the one named being probably a relative whom he could trust, to arrest the servants whom Perkin had bribed. P. 177, line ■24. executed. Ralph Wilford was hanged on Shrove Tuesday, Feb, 13th, 1 498-9. 31. of his order, i. e. he was not executed, because he was a clergy- man and so could claim privilege. P. 178, line 5. arraigned at iVestminster. This was November i6th, 1499. II. to destroy those that did not espy him first. This power was ascribed to the cockatrice. See Sir Thos. Brown, Vulgar Errors, Book III. ch. 7. 16. three counsellors, i.e. Heme, Skelton and Astley (see text, p. 163). 20. the mayor of Cork, called in Hall "Jhon Awater." 32. beheaded on To7ver-hill. The Earl of Warwick was arraigned on the 19th of November, and beheaded on the 29th, 1499. P. 179, line 7. transplanted into other names. For some of the various families which can trace their origin to the Plantagenet line, see Imhoff, Hist. Genealogica, Tab. V. 26. King Henry the eighth his resolution. This use of his as an equivalent for the old es of the possessive case was of common acceptance in Bacon's time. Its mistaken character is at once seen, when it is remem- bered that the same termination belongs to feminine nouns, after which his could of course not be used. We have an instance in the Book of Common Prayer, at the close of the Prayer for all conditions of men, " for Jesus Christ his sake." P. 180, line 18. Lord Saint John, i.e. Thomas Poynings, Lord St John of Basing. 31. former treaties. Some new regulations about wool and the sale of cloth had been agreed upon between Henry and Philip, in the spring of 1499, ^"^^ proclaimed in London on 29th May in that year. 33. duke of York, Prince Henry, afterwards Henry VIII. B. H. 19 290 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII. P. i8i, line 5. in treaty. The marriage between Charles the son of Philip and the Princess Mary of England became afterwards the subject of a treaty. See Rymer (xiii. p. 171). I r. how drily, i. e. with what curtness and want of courtesy. P'or the facts see text, p. 119. 14. father and father in law, Maximilian and Ferdinand. 18. in tire. This form of the word use was common at this period. Cf. More's Utopia, Arber's Reprints, p. 121, "To keep in ure the feate and knowledge of sailing." A similar variation of these consonants may be seen in A.S. mi. forleSsan (to lose) and "^."^.forloren (lost, forlorn). i\, Lexvis, i. e. Lewis XII. 26. "winning of the duchy of Milan. As soon as Lewis XII came to the throne he laid claim not only to the throne of Naples, but also to the duchy of Milan as the representative of his grandmother Valcntina Visconti, only daughter of the last duke of that name. Having secured the concurrence of the Pope and the cooperation or neutrality of the other powers, his army led by Stuart D'Aubigny and Trivulcio de- scended into Lombardy in August, 1499, without opposition. Ludovico Sforza fled to the Tyrol and claimed the protection of Maximilian. The French generals entered Milan in triumph on the 14th of Sept. without having fired a single shot. P. 183, line 1. year of jubile. The year of Jubile extended from Christmas, i499> to Christmas, 1500, therefore it coincided more nearly with the King's fifteenth year. Jas])er Pons came in 1499 — 5°- -^^r the articles of the bull of the Holy Jubile see Gairdners Letters, &c. (11. 93 — 100), where is an edifying list of the prices to be paid by all sorts of persons for their dispensations. 7. yasper Pons, called in the above named document *' the right reverend father in God, Jasper Pon, prothonotary and doctor of Divinity of our said Holy Father, the pope's ambassador." 9. Popre Leo. Alluding to those sent in the time of Leo X, to raise money by the sale of indulgences ; whose behaviour was so gross and irreverent as to lead to the demand for a Reformation. Tetzel (Luther's adversary) was one of the most energetic of these commissioners of Pope Leo. 13. the King s/iatrd in the money. That this was not so, see Exceipta LListorica, p. 128, where is an entry of ;(^400o paid to "Caspar Pon " for the Pope's use, which shews that so far from sharing in the Jubile-money the King sent, of his own, a large sum for the Papal use. 27. in person against the Turk. The old Chronicle quoted by Mr Spedding says, "This year came certain tidings to the King that the Turk had gotten the town Modon and made great destruction of the Christians. " P. 184, line 14. 7'ather solemn than serious, i.e. of a formal charac- ter, but without any serious intention of taking action in the matter. 31. Kings of France and Spain. Henry's suggestion is that instead of these two Kings joining in the attack on Grajcia, in which common action they might disagree, it would be wise to give one of them the command of the navy. NOTES. 291 P. 185, line 13. knights of Rhodes, the Knights of St John, This order founded in 1048 came and settled in Rhodes in 13 10, where they remained till 1522. 20. to convert one of them. See Excerpta Historic a, p. 117, where on April 20, 1498, the King gives "to the herytik at Canterbury 6s. 8d." Perhaps this was the man. The old Chronicle says that the convert "died a Christian man whereof His Grace have great honour." In spite of his conversion he was burnt all the same. See Fuller, Church Hist. iv. 15. 32. 27. Ea7-l of Suffolk. See the table in notes, p. 230. P. 186, line 4. bei tig discontent. He fled in the month of August. "It seems," says Mr Spedding, "that the Earl had another cause of discontent. His elder brother John (earl of Lincoln) had been attainted during the duke their father's lifetime. When the duke died, Edmund (earl of Suffolk) claimed the honour and estate of his father. But Henry persisted in considering him as the heir of his brother, and gave him only the title of Earl with a small portion of his patrimony: — an instance of the troubles which Henry bred for himself from his aver- sion to the House of York." 14. Lady Catharine. There seeais to be some mistake about the age of Catharine of Aragon. Miss Strickland, on the authority of a Spanish MS., says she was born on 15th Dec. 1485. So that she was not quite sixteen at the time of her marriage to Prince Arthur. The details which preceded this marriage are given in a note of Mr Spedding's (p. 212). It was first agreed upon on the 27th of March, 1489, before Arthur was three years old. On 2nd Nov. 1491, Catharine's dowry was settled, and it was arranged that she should be brought to England as soon as Arthur had completed his fourteenth year. On Oct. i, 1496, it was settled that if necessary for any urgent cause, the Pope should be applied to for a dispensation that the mar- riage by proxy should take place as soon as Arthur had completed his twelfth year. Arthur was twelve years old in Sept. 1498. The proxy marriage took place 19th May, 1499. On the 20th of Dec. 1499, the proxy marriage was approved by Ferdinand and Isabella, and on the 28th May, 1500, the whole proceeding was ratified by Henry." These long previous treaties and contracts make against the idea that there was a very close connection between Warwick's execution and the final settlement of this marriage. P. 188, line 3. deceased at LudloT.v. This was 2nd April, 1502, so that Arthur's age was then about fifteen years and a half. ir. February. The date of Henry's creation as Prince of Wales is 1 8th Feb. 1503. 26. the five and t2vefitieth of January, i.e. in 1503. From this marriage was descended James V, father of Mary Queen of Scots, who was mother of James I of England. P. 189, line 5. Colliwfston, in Northamptonshire, about four miles from Stamford. It was a favourite residence of the King's mother, where she finished the house begun by Ralph Lord Cromwell. 19—2 292 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VI I. 6. Earl of Northumberland. Sir Henry Percy, the commander at Blackheath, II. three years. More than three years. Fox was formally com- missioned to treat of the marriage on the nth September, 1499. P. 190, line 2. Queen Elizabeth. She died Feb. 2nd, 1503. 6. the better to set off flattery. The Latin gives quod adulationem redderet magis sapidarii., that he might give his flattery more flavour, 19. Enipson. Richard Empson, the well-known instrument of Henry's exactions. j Dudley., Edmund Dudley, the father of John Dudley, who became earl of Warwick in the next reign, and duke of Northumberland under Edward VI, and was father of eight sons, among whom the most known are Lord Guildford Dudley, married to Lady Jane Grey, and Lord Robert, the famous Earl of Leicester, of the reign of Queen Elizabeth. 24. triumphed always upon the deed done, i. e. secured the accom- plishment of what he aimed at by any means in his power, and then had his triumph. 32. to cofnmit them, i. e. to prison, instead of proceeding with their trial upon the bills found against them. 33. produce them, i. e. in court, to answer the charges laid against them. P. 191, line 6. the half-face. They had a shew of legal proceeding when they caused their victims to be indicted and had bills found, but soon they left off even this. 9. in a court of comtnission, proceeding as if they were appointed special commissioners. 14. tenures in capite. The tenures in capite were subject to the seven following incidents, aids, relief, primer seisin, wardship, marriage, fines for alienation, and escheat. false offices, feigned and invented duties to which the tenants were made liable. 15. ivardships, the right whereby the child of a tenant in capite, while under age, becomes if left fatherless the ward of the feudal lord. liveries, sometimes called livery of seisin, which was the formal investiture of the tenant with his possessions, and was held absolutely necessary to complete the donation, and which of course had to be paid for. 16. premier seisins, the right which accrues to the feudal lord to claim a certain sum when the heirs to an estate held from him are of full age. 22. informations of intrusion, complaints of having encroached on the royal domain, which these men made with little or no ground. 32. to find, to give such verdicts as they would direct. P. 192, line 5. working. The Latin giWQsflagellum, a scourge. 9. than of rigour, i. e. than of being rigorously enforced. 10. leading Jttrors, who would understand what was expected of them, and lead the rest of their number with them. \6. Henningham, called also Heveningham and Hedingham, is in NOTES. 293 Essex, and was at this time the seat of the Earl of Oxford. See Paston Letters (Gairdner), Vol. III. p. 352. 24. It may please. See note on Dedication, line i. that were not for 77iine ease. To have so large a number of servants to maintain would be a very costly matter even for the Earl of Oxford. 25. my retainers. The Latin explains, Servants who render occa- sional extraordinary service, but live at their own cost. 32. fifteen thousand marks. The King visited Lord Oxford on the 6th of August, 1498 (see Privy Purse Expenses of Hen. VII, p. 119), on which occasion the incident here narrated may have occurred. A heavier fine for a similar offence was exacted from Lord Abergavenny some years afterwards. In a memorandum of obligations and sums of money received by Edmund Dudley for fines and duties to be paid to the King (MS. Harl. 1877, ^- 47)> the following item appears as belong- ing to the 23rd year of this reign :^ Item ; delivered three exemplifications under the seal of the Lords of King's Bench of the confession and condemnation of the Lord Burga- venny for such retainers as he was indicted of in Kent ; which amount- eth unto, for his part only, after the rate of the months ;^69,9oo. It appears from the Calendar of Patent Polls (23 Hen. VII, Pt. II. p. r8) that George Nevile Knt. Lord Burgavenny received a pardon of all felonies, offences against the forest laws, &c. , on the i8th Feb. 1507 — 8, two months before Henry's death. Fabyan mentions his being committed to the Tower "for a displeasure which concerned no treason" in May, 1506 (Speckling). P. 193, line 16. at Prince Arthur's marriage. A mistake. Fabyan and the old Chronicle both state that the Earl of Lincoln went abroad secretly in August, 1501, and in the Calendar of Patent Rolls (17 Hen. VII, Pt. 11. p. 4) Sir Robert Lovell is appointed, on Oct. 8, 1501, as receiver and surveyor of all lands, &c., in Norfolk and Suffolk, late the property of the rebel Edmund earl of Suffolk. 19. his brother. Richard de la Pole. (See Dugdale, II. 191). He was afterwards slain in battle at Pavia in Italy in 1525. 27. Sir Robert Ciirson, sometimes called Lord Curson. Maximilian created him a baron of the Roman empire. On his communications with Maximilian concerning Edmund de la Pole many documents are given in Gairdner's Letters, &c. P. 194, line 6. William de la Pole. This is a mistake. The brothers of the Earl of Suffolk alive at this time were only Humphrey, a cleric: Edward archdeacon of Richmond, and the Richard mentioned above. But Hall gives the same name, William de la Pole. 7. Sir James Tirrel. The murderer of the princes in the Tower. Sir "John Windham. He with Tirrel was executed on May 6th, 1502. 9. George Lord Abergavenny. See note on p. 192, 1. 32. Sir Thomas Green. He is mentioned in Gairdner's Letters, &c. (i. 226) in an account of the astrologers who were to be consulted as to the 294 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VIL chances of Edmund de la Pole's success; also (r. 410) as taking part in the preparations for the reception of Catharine of Aragon. 24. bull of excommunication and curse. That Henry was wont in this way to confirm the credit of his spies see text, p. ir6. Fabyan says these men were cursed twice, on Sunday, 23rd October, 1502, and again on the first Sunday in Lent (March 5) 1503. Curson received his pardon May 5, 1504. P. 195, line 6. Joan his wife, daughter of Ferdinand and Isabella. 9. his parliatnent. This was summoned for 25 January, 1503 — 4. 16. a statute. This was 19 Hen. VH, c. 1, and provides that whosoever doth not attend upon the King being in person in wars shall lose such lands as he hath of the King's gift. 22. frofu their house, i.e. from the time of leaving their house, as stated in the act. 28. Another statute. This was 19 Hen. VH, c. 21, defining what small things wrought of silk may not be imported. Those having them in stock were allowed till Whitsunday 1505 to get them sold. P. 196, line 6. patents of gaols. This act is 19 Hen. VH, c. 19, providing that the sheriffs shall have the keeping of the common gaols and the prisoners therein, and making them responsible for the safe custody; so all letters patent granting the keeping of any gaols were revoked. 13. being fraternities in er'il, i.e. these corporations being fraterni- ties in evil. This statute is 19 Hen. VH, c. 7, and states that the by- laws against which it was directed had been unlawful and unreasonable ordinances, as well in prices of wares as in other things. 18. to bring in the silver, &c. This act is 19 Hen. VH, c. 5. It allowed persons to convert their clipped coin into plate or bullion. It also describes the value at which the coins already in use are to be accepted. 31. not the only statute. This was 19 Hen. VII, c. 12, but in this reign another statute against vagabonds appears in the eleventh year, c. 2. P. 197, line 2. as if the one, &c., i.e. as if the punishment of the one were of no avail without the putting down of the other : as though it were idle to get rid of one unless you got rid of the other. 6. an eye to might and vudtitude, being on his watch to keep in check the power of the nobles in their retainers, and the gatherings of the people in riot. 7. a subsidy. The King could at this time claim two reasonable aids, one for the knighting of his son, the other for the marriage of his daughter. The Commons offered him;i^40,ooo in lieu of them. 8. the clergy. The clergy at this time formed a separate estate and taxed themselves by their own vote independently of the temporal estates of the realm. 31. the serjeaiifs feast. See supra, p. 131, 1. 7 and note. This second feast was kept 13th Nov., 1503. 33. Isabella Queen of Castile. She died 26th Nov., 150^. NOTES. 295 P. 198, line 3. not foi- news at large, i.e. not merely a matter which concerned all persons alike, no piece of ordinary news. 14. the other, i.e. the case of Ferdinand. P. 199, line 7. poor amity of Aragon. Poor, because Ferdinand would have lost Castile. 13. Queen of N'aples. This was Joan widow of Ferdinand II of Naples, and niece of Ferdinand of Aragjon. 16. ,^c?^/= a matter of contention. -20. Francis Marsin. Sir Francis Marsin was also employed in the communications between Lewis XII and Henry. See Gairdner's Letters, &c. (i. 289). He was likewise one of those present at the meet- ing between Henry and the Archduke Philip in 1500. James Braybrooke. Braybrooke is mentioned among the grooms and pages of the chamber present at the same meeting. 21. John Stile. Stile is alluded to in the instructions given to Wolsey about the treaty of marriage between Henry and Margaret of vSavoy. He must have at some time been in trouble, for he received a pardon 16 June, 1502. See Gairdner, 1 1. 378. The commissioners went first to Valencia, where the two Queens were, and then to Segovia, where they arrived on the 14th of July, 1505, and had their interview with Ferdinand shortly afterwards. Marsin and Braybooke were paid ^s. a day and Stile 4^-. a day for four months, which was the time occupied by the mission. ■29. the old... Queen of Naples. This was Joan, widow of Ferdinand I of Naples. She was a daughter of John II king of Aragon, and mother of the widowed queen mentioned p. 119, 1. 13. 31. Doctor dc Piicbla. Rodrigo de la Puebla. For much of the correspondence of this envoy with Ferdinand, see Gairdner's Letters, &c. In 1507 King Henry granted to him the office of Master of Sherborne Hospital (Rymer, xiii. 167). P. 200, line 5. curious and exquisite. The commissioners report in regard to one point of their directions, "to mark and note well the features of her body," that the young queen was so covered with her mantle that they could only see her visage. P. 201, line 10. by continuance, by a long residence in the country. 13. Pluto was better to him than Pallas, i.e. Pluto representing wealth and Pallas wisdom, the phrase implies that his plans did not succeed, though in gain of actual wealth he was verj^i fortunate. See additional Notes. 12. which was the A'ings inon case, i.e. Prince Henry's popularity was greater than that of his father, and for this same reason, that the King had grieved the people by his exactions. See text. p. 211. 25. ^imason. Michael Peter d'Almacan, secretary of Ferdinand and Isabella (see Rymer, xiil. 86). 27. Charles Prince of Castile: afterwards the famous emperor Charles V. He was born at Ghent 24th February, 1500. 31. Angolesme. This was Francis of Angouleme, duke of Valois, afterwards King Francis I of France. P. 202, line r. Madame de Fois, i.e. Germaine de Foix, niece to Lewis XII. 296 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII 12. entire, &c., to act more confidently and heartily towards Ferdinand, but to give great outward observance and diligence to his conduct towards Philip. 16. both allies, both Philip the father of Charles, and Ferdinand, who was grandfather to that prince. 23, As a specimen of the English of Grafton's Chronicle, a portion of the description of the unintended visit of the Archduke Philip to England is subjoined: "In this very season, and the yere of our Lord 1505, Elizabeth Queene of Castell, wife to Ferdinand king of Arragon dyed without any issue male, by reason whereof the inheritaunce of Castell (because that kingdoms be not partible) discended to Lady Jane her eldest daughter by king Ferdinando, the which was maried to Philip Archduke of Austrich and Burgoyne, and Erie of Flaunders. Which kingdome he obtayned by hys wife, and had the possession of the same and was named, reputed, and taken, as king of Castell and Lyn. Wherefore the yere folowyng, about the sixt day of January, havyng a great navy prepared, he sayled out of Flaunders with his wife towarde Spaine, but he had sayled no great way, before that a sore tempest, by reason of contrariety of windes sodainly arose, so that the whole navy was tossed and chafed with the waves and sodaine scourges. In so much the winde havyng the maistry, dispersed and separated the ships asunder into divers places on the coast of England, The kinges ship with two other vesselles were blowen by tempest on the west part of the realme to the porte of Weymouth in Dorsetshire. Then king Philip which was not expert, and had not frequented the seas before, beyng weryed and unquieted both in minde and bodie, enteryng the ship boate to refreshe and repose himselfe a little, came a land con- trary to the mynd of his counsaile and capitaynes, which foresaw and knew well that the same landyng should be the occasion of lenger tariyng there. When it was knovven that straunge shippes were arrived there came thether a great number as well of noblemen, as of rurall persons that dwelle about that coast, to repulse and beate away him if he were their enemie. But when they perceyved he was their friend and lover, and driven thether by force of weather, Sir Thomas Trenchard knight, the chiefe of that companie, went to Philip king of Castell with all humanitie and lowlinesse, invityng and desyring him (if he would so vouchsafe) to visite his Manor and Mancion, which was even nighe at hande, trustyng thereby to have great thankes of the king his maister, if he could protract and cause hmi to tarye there, until such tyme as king Henry were certified of his arrivall, to whom with all diligente celeritie, he sent divers postes to notifie to his grace of king Philips landyng. This rumour beyng farther blowne abrode of this straimge Princes commyng, in a short space there assembled together a great multitude of people all a long the sea-coast. And among other there came first Sir John Carew with a goodly band of picked men. Which Sir John and Sir Thomas Trenchard entreated the king of Castell, not to depart until such tyme as he had spoken with king Henry his lovyng and faythful friend and allye, assuryng him that he would repayre thether within two or three daies at the most. King Philip NOTES. 297 excused himseife by the necessitie of his weightie enterprise and impor- tunate cause, affyrming that long tariyng in matters of gravitie and doubtfull, ought to be exckided : wherefore he alleged that protractyng of tynie might turne him to great prejudice, — denying at the first to expect and tary the commyng of the king of England : but yet being per- swaded by reason in himseife, that he might be let and interrupted, if he v/oulde proffer once to go abrode to his shippes againe, at their gentle desyre and lovyng contemplation, assented to their humble peti- tion and request. 32. Sir Thomas Trenchard., of Wolverton. For an account of this family, see Hutchin's Dorset, II. 151. It is there stated that John Russell of Berwick was sent for, as having been resident in Spain, to help his relative Sir Thos. Trenchard in interesting the archduke, and thus his family came into favour with Henry VII and that the foundation of the honours of the illustrious family of the Duke of Bedford dates from this time. P. 203, line 4. Sir John Carew. A member of the family of Carew of Haccombe in Devonshire. See Lyson's Britannia (Vol. vi. p. 46). ir. the Earl of Arundel. Thomas Fitz- Alan. He had served in Flanders in the wars in aid of Maximilian. His wife was a daughter of Earl Rivers, and one of his daughters had been the wife of John Earl of Lincoln. 27. when they 7net last. See text, p. 180, 1. 16. 33. were raised, i. e. by his accession to the kingdom of Castile. P. 204, line 5. changing his coicntenance, ^c. The Latin has Vul- tnque nonnihil ad seriiuji coniposito, *'with his looks somewhat changed to a solemn cast." 30. shall not take his life. Henry so far kept his word, but the Earl was put to death in 15 13 by Henry VIII. P. ■205, line 7. enforced, i. e. forced by Henry to send for the Earl of Suffolk from Flanders. 19. received at the Toiuer. This was, according to the old Chronicle, about the end of March, 1505-6. 24. Golden Fleece. The order of the Golden Fleece was instituted by Philip the Good, duke of Burgundy, in 1429. The King of Spain as duke of Burgundy became Grand Master of the Order. P. 206, line 3. i7t the treaty of undecimo, i.e. in i\\Q intercursns tnag-^ mis granted in the eleventh year of the King. II. the school-house. Dean Colet's school was established in 15 12 between the end of Henry Vllth's reign and Bacon's time. 21. deceased. Philip died 25 Sept. 1526. 32. fell distracted. She is reported to have shewn signs of insanity before this time. P. 207, line 2. the felicity of Charles the eighth, in his conquest of Naples. 7. Pope Julius, i. e. Julius II who occupied the pontifical throne from 1503 to I513. 8. his famoiis prediction, mentioned afterwards in the text, p. 220, 1. 31. He is said to have foretold that Henry of Richmond would be 298 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII King of England at a time when such a statement seemed most impro- bable. 12. yulins was too dear. Against this notion, see Hook's Lives of the Archbishops (ist series, Vol. v. p. 460), where it is shewn that Henry Vn did actually pay the sum required ( 1 500 ducats) for the canonization of Anselm, and such sum he would not have spared to accomplish his end if money could have done it. 2 ?. Lady Ma7'garet duchess dowager of Savoy. This was the princess who in the commencement of Henry's reign had been betrothed to Charles Vni of France and called Queen of France. She was sent from the court of France where she was being educated, at the time when Charles married Anne of Brittany. She was sent to Spain in 1496, and mar- ried the duke of Savoy and was now his widow. 28. Thomas Wolsey, afterwards the famous archbishop of York. P. 208, line 4. a little of the xvheel, i.e. to experience a change of fortune. 12. the government of Castilia. Dr Lingard says that, after the death of Philip, Maximilian urged Henry to make this claim. P. 209, line 12. the Savoy. Henry VH rebuilt this palace which had first been the residence of Peter duke of Savoy under Eleanor queen of Henry HI. Henry VH made it a charitable foundation, and by his will left an endowment for a master and four chaplains. Over the gate were these lines, *' King Henry the seventh to his merit and honour This hospital founded poor people to succour." 25. Sir William Capel. See before p. 128. 33. ICnesworth. Thomas Kneesworth was one of the sheriffs of London in 1495 and mayor in 1505. P. 210, line 6. Sir Lawrence Ailmer. He was sheriff in 1501. 10. Empson was comfnitted in his place. On the accession of Henry VHI. 22. was perfected. Dec. 17, 1508. P. 211, line II. a general pardon, a boon bestowed by Kings at the time of their coronation. 22. 1508. This should be 1509, but is thus printed in Speed and in the edition of 1622. Henry completed his twenty-third year on 2ist Aug. 1508 and died 22nd April, 1509. P. 214, line 3. to discharge, &^c. i.e. to take the blame away from their princes, even though they lay it unfairly upon others. 13. sought to purge, e.g. by the execution of Empson and Dudley. P. 215, line II. Hastings. William, Lord Hastings of Ashby de la Zouch, executed by Richard HL 12. Charles Brandon, afterwards duke of Suffolk and husband of Mary, Henry VHth's younger daughter. P. 216, line 28. to give them credence, to cause people to believe them to be his real enemies as Henry did by having them cursed. See text, p. 116, 1. 15. NOTES. 299 P. 217, line 13. till himself were declared, till he had made his own intention known. 27. Hiissey. Sir William Hussey was chief justice of the King's Bench. (See Gairdner's Letters, &c. I. 67.) Froiuick, one of the King's Serjeants at law. P. 219, line 2. Cardinal Adrian, i.e. Adrian de Castello. See note on p. 68, 1. ri. P. 220, line 15. tres viagi, i.e. the three wise men. 14. long of , i. e. owing to. This expression is not common, but see Shaksp. Cymb. V. 5. 271, " O, she was naught : and long ofher it was That we meet here so strangely." P. 221, line 6. daintiest inommients. Henry Vllth's chapel will still bear the praise which Bacon here gives to it. ADDITIONAL NOTES. p. 226, on note xV ^'^d P- ^^8, on note |^. In order that the unpopularity with which the name of Richard III. was regarded may be understood, it should be mentioned in addition to what is here stated, that towards the end of his reign he found himself compelled to revive "Benevolences" though not in the same form as had been customary. The Croyland Chronicler of his reign tells us that this took place in 1485. The words are "Ad regis Edwardi exactiones, quas in pleno parliamento damnavit, benevolentiae tamen vocabulum modis omnibus aspernatus, se convertit." That is he asked for the money, but did not call it by the old name. He styled it a loan. The form in which the demands were made ran thus : By the King, Trusty and Wellbeloved, we greet you well. And for such great and excessive costs and charges as we hastily must bear and sustain, as well for the keeping of the sea, as otherwise for the defence of this our realm, we desire and in our heartiest wise pray you to send unto us by way of loan by our trusty servant this bearer [ ] 1. And we promise you by these our letters, signed with our own hand truly to recontent you, one moiety thereof at Martilmas next coming and the residue at the feast of St John the Baptist then next following without further delay, assuring you that, accomplishing this our in- stant desire and hearty prayer, ye shall find us your good and gracious sovereign lord, in any your reasonable desires hereafter: giving further credence to our said servant in such things as he shall move unto you on our behalf touching the said matter. Given &c. * Here a blank was left for the name. 300 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII The bearers of these letters were furnished with a "remembrance" of the sort of language they were to employ to move men to comply with the King's request ; thus : "Sir, The King's Grace greeteth you well and desireth and heartily prayeth that by way of loan ye will let him have such sum as his Grace hath written to you for ; and ye shall truly have it again at such days as he hath shewed and promised to you in his letters. And this he desireth to be employed for the defence and surety of his royal person, and the weal of this his realm. And for that intent his Grace and all his lords, thinking that every true Englishman will help him in this behalf, of which number his Grace reputeih and taketh you for one ; and that is the cause he this writeth to you before other, for the great love confidence and substance that his Grace hath and knoweth in you, which trusteth undoubtedly that ye, like a loving subject, will at this time accomplish this his desire." The sum asked for was written in the corner of each letter and varied from ;!^300 to ^^40. It is supposed that between February and April there was collected in this way ^i^aoooo, a large sum at that time. But this new mode of levying contributions had such a likeness in all but name to the old, that in the disturbed state of the times, it became the cause of great odium. The promise of repayment was but lightly regarded. P. 229, on p. -3^. This Sir Robert was the founder of the existing family of Willoughby de Broke. He was succeeded by his son Robert (as the 2nd Baron) who died without male issue in 1521. But a granddaughter of his, named Elizabeth, married Sir Fulke Greville. The title remained dormant till 1695, when it was granted to Sir Richard Verney, a grandson of Margaret Verney, who was a grand- daughter of Elizabeth Greville. The favour in which Sir Robert Willoughby was held by Henry Vn. is well seen in the "Materials for the History of Henry VII." published in the Rolls Series. At the opening of the reign he is sent to bring Edward, Earl of Warwick, from Yorkshire, he is made steward of all manner of mines in the counties of Devonshire and Cornwall, and is appointed receiver of the Duchy of Cornwall, has granted to him leases of manors here and there with the wardships, marriages, x-eliefs &c. during the minority of the heirs, is made lieutenant of the forest of Bradon, in Wiltshire, receives a grant of the lands forfeited by Lord Zouche. He had also been entrusted with all the "empcions and provisions of stuff" for the King's coronation, and is shewn as one whom the King specially delighted to honour. Occasion may be here taken to direct attention to these volumes which contain much matter illustrative of every part of this history. P. 243, on -f^. For the nature of the privileges of the Clergy at this time "the reader may with advantage consult such documents as the Charter of King Edward IV. of 1462 (see Wilkins Concilia, III. p. 583). It is entitled "Charta de libertatibus clericorum, et ne ipsi clerici per laicos arrestentur, aut in aliquo per breve 'Praemunire ADDITIONAL NOTES. 301 facias' vexentur, et quod decimam de grossis arboribus libera exigere valeant." The language is of the most large kind and the Charter was evidently intended to purchase the support of the Church and her revenues, for the King who granted it. A confirmation of the same Charter was made in 1483 by Richard III., doubtless with the same intention (Wilkins, III. 616). A com- plaint of the neglect of some of these privileges of the clergy was directed in 1485 to Henry VII. by Pope Innocent VIII. and is recorded in Wilkins (ill. 617), and shews how this "paring of the privilege of the clergy" which Bacon speaks of p. 64, 13 would be resented by the papal authority. The Pope's language is very forcible. After some laudatory words of introduction he beseeches the King to give all his labour, diligence and authority to stop some offences towards God which have lately been committed. For the Pope has heard with sorrow that some priests have been arrested {capii), not by their bishops, or by those who have in other ways jurisdiction over them, and without examination have been, by secular judges, contrary to all divine law {fas), to all decrees of the holy Fathers, to all the constitutions of the Popes and councils, sometimes tortured, sometimes most cruelly wounded, and in some cases hanged. Now they ought to have been tried by ecclesias- tical judges, and then if found guilty to have been delivered over to the secular power. The Pope has heard too that Cathedrals and Bishops have been plundered of their property. Therefore he can use no soft words {vei-ha palpantia et adulatoria) in writing to the King. For it is written by the prophet, "His blood will I require at thy hand, saith the Lord." P. 245 on p. -V-- In the notice of De Vere, his presence at and escape from the battle of Barnet-field (1471) ought to be mentioned. The imaginary adventures of himself and his son, during the period of their exile, form the subject of Sir Walter Scott's Anne of Geierstein. P. 261, on p. V"' Ii^ explanation of common recovery and the Statute of Fines, Hallam goes back to the statute de donis conditionalibtis of Edward I., the operation of which these legal fictions were intended to defeat. King Edward's statute enacted that "lands given to a naan and the heirs of his body, with remainder to other persons, or reversion to the donor, could not be alienated by the possessor for the time being, either from his own issue or from those who were to succeed them." Now the judges very early lent their aid to the tenant in tail who was anxious to alienate. The most popular form of relief was the application to estates tail the fiction of common recoveries. Thus the operation of the statutes of mortmain had already been eluded. A common recovery is in form an action at law, and in reality a mode of conveyance. It may be explained thus. The party purchasing pretended to be entitled to the lands in question, sued out his writ against the seller, who came into court, and instead of defending his title, called upon some person, who it was feigned had originally warranted the title to him, to appear and defend the title attacked, or to give him land of equal value. On this the person (usually named 302 HISTORY OF KING HENRY VII the vouchee) appeared to the action, and the demandant intreated the permission of the court for a private conference with the grantee, which was never denied. Shortly after the demandant returned into court, and the vouchee disappeared, on which the court presuming the title of the demandant good gave judgement in his favour. The case in which it was finally decided that such a recovery was good against the issue was that of Taltarum (12 Edward IV.). This case is said to have been brought on the stage by the King, to obtain, as was actually done, a solemn decision affirming the efficacy of common recoveries. He appears to have desired to destroy the power of the overgrown feudatories whose vast possessions and wealth, in these times of disturbance, threatened the stability of the throne. The Statute of Fines, in Henry VHth's reign, was a further step in the same direction, adapting the ancient system of fines to the same purpose as recoveries, viz. the breaking up of entail. P. 295 on W^. Perhaps in the passage of the text Pluto may mean "death" and not "wealth." Such an explanation would fulfil the con- ditions of the text very well. 303 GLOSSARY. able, effective, sufficient to produce a result, 7, 1 3 abolition, used to signify the for- giving and forgetting injuries, 75. 13 abuse {to), to deceive, to mislead, 138, 30 account {to put anything to), to take account or notice of, 145, 33 acquest, an acquisition or gain; used of increase of territories, 90, 8 : 172, 22 addtdce, to render palatable, 84, 14 advance {to), to put into a position of advantage, 135, 4 advancement, the maintenance of the dignity of a royal person- age, money allowed for such maintenance, 187, 15, 19: 189, advertised, instructed, informed, 46, 25 advowtry, adultery, 89, 3 affect {to), to shew liking for, 97, 28 a/?^r= afterwards, 207, 28 alchemy, the transmutation of me- tals. Here used figuratively of the training given to Warbeck, 186, 8 Allhallozvs-day, All Saints' day, I St November, i'2i, 7 amoi-tise, to make over, transfer, 71, 28 anatomy, a skeleton, a dissected model, 116, 1 8 ancient, used of a person, old, 200, 10 anjiual, annual payment, 102, 22 answerable, corresponding, accord- ing with, 158, 14 answered, of a money payipent, securely guaranteed, regularly paid, 200, 16 appalenient, a rendering pallid through fright, 37, 17 appeached, accused, implicated in an accusation, 171, 5 apposite, suitable, satisfactory, to the point, 11 r, 22 ar7ns, armorial bearing, a coat of arms, 99, 2 articulate, pointed, particular, clear, distinct, 216, 19 artificially, artfully, pretendedly, II, 31 : 92, 18 assigned, appointed, directed, lOi, 3 assured, pledged, faithfully bound, 94> 31 attemper {to), to modify, soften, tone down, 18, 6 : 151, 28 attentates, attempts, 86, 2 avails, value produced by any- thing, the worth of anything, 94, avoid {to), to depart from (a coun- try), 146, 31 babies, dolls, 145, 30 ball, the orb in the hand of a monarch as an emblem of sove- reignty, 136, 29 bannerets, knights created under the royal banner, 13, 17 304 GLOSSARY. base, base-born, illegitimate, 109, 6 bastarded, declared illegitimate, 29, 15 bead-roll, a prayer-list, register of persons to be prayed for, or (here) cursed, 116, 16 beat {to), to sift thoroughly, in- quire into, 209, 27 best'be-trust, exceedingly trusted, in whom most confidence is placed, 115, 32 better, used to express the excess over any number ; as ' and bet- ter,' 93, 7 bid battle {to), to offer battle, to challenge to combat, 150, 30 blanch {to), lit. to make white, hence to render less serious, to lighten, to take the terror from, blooded, mixed in fatal warfare, stained with each other's blood, 77, 6 bloods, persons of courage and spirit, 50, 24 board {to), to assail, attack, used primarily of attacking ships, 115. 29 boilings in a ferment; used of a country in a state of excitement, 156, 8 brandle {to), to spoil, to make to totter, to overthrow, 155, 4 bravery, a show or parade, 33, 13 broach, a spit for roasting meat, 38,8 brocage, base, mean practices, 7, 7 brook {to), to like ; to put up with, 125, ir bruits, noises, rumours, common fame, 22, 27: 25, 23: 112, 17 butchers, applied to the murderers of the princes in the tower, 1 14, 4 cabinet, private, secret, confiden- tial 107, 7 casualties (Lat. casualid), wind- falls, accidental gains, 17, 28: 128, 9 : 197, 22 catching, in the phrase " a catch- ing harvest," means hurried, hasty, 158, I cauls, a net or covering for the head, 195, 33 caveat, a Latin word meaning let him beware, used as an English substantive = a caution, 85, 7 celestial, divine, belonging to a saint, 207, 6 cement {to), reflex., to patch itself together, 159, 27 censorian, belonging to the office of a censor, pertaining to moral discipline, 62, 17 ceremony, the religious character of any observance, 30, 16 champaign, flat, level (of coun- tries), Lat. campus, 36, 32 check-roll, an authoritative list, 63, 7 chievances, more commonly writ- ten achievances, meaning trade transactions, 64, 30 churchnian, an ecclesiastic, one versed in church controversies, 47, 18 : 211, 32 : 220, 18 churlish, obstinate, 166, 30 churm, probably A.S. cyrm {see notes), but not understood by Ba- con's translator, who renders it by chorus, 1 70, 8 cincture, compass, enclosure, 121, 21 clerks, clergymen, persons claim- ing the privilege of clergy, 120, 27 close, secret, concealed, 24, 32 cockatrice, an imaginary animal supposed to have been hatched by a cock from the eggs of a viper. Ancient belief attributed to it the power of killing by a glance of the eye, 178, ii coffer tip {to), to hoard or store in coffers, 51, 33 cognisances, badges, marks of livery, as retainers, 192, 18 GLOSSARY, 305 colourable, of a fair outside, satis- factory appearance, but intended to conceal, 191, 23, 27 comfort (Lat. confortare), to give material strength and support, 44, 20 : 127, 18 : 169, 16 commiserable, intensely miserable, 179, 2 commission, an appointment of judges, 39, 6 commodity, advantage, utility, con- venience, 36, 27 : 94, 10 : 120, I commonplace, a hackneyed topic, an ordinary remark, 211, 28 communicate, to share with others, to let others have a share, 103, i ^(?»z/««?Vz^/^,companionable,friend- ly, social, 217, 4 compense {to), to compensate, to balance, 189, 33 complices, accomplices, 109, T4 : 126, 2 : 209, 14 conceit {to), to fancy, to imagine, 150, 14: 171, 19 conclave, an assembly, most fre- quently of the pope and his councillors, 183, 31 conclude {to), to include, 133, 32 concurrents, contemporaries, those living at the same time, 220, 6 conditional (n.), the use of condi- tional language, or the language of supposition, 123, 25, 26 conditions, arrangements, employ- ments ; rank, quality (in a con- tract of marriage) , 138, 13: 199, II confident to ^^ixw^i&fS. by, on whom dependence can be placed, 137, consort, communion, unity, agree- ment, fellowship, 97, 26: 220, 1 1 contained, held back, restrained, control {to), to check, refute, dis- prove, 107, 23 convent^ to summon or call before a court, 191, 7, 33 convert (adj.), converted, 106, 12 cordwainer (Fr. cordonnier), a worker in leather of Cordova, a shoemaker, 177, 15 corners, squadrons, troops (Lat. cornu), 152, 30 correspondence, an arrangement for intercommunication, a means of communicating, 31, 24: 113,21 corroborate {to), to give material strength, 202, 17 cosmography, the description of the world, geographical know- ledge, 171, 16 courtesy, sufferance, at his courtesy = at his will and pleasure, 112, 26 court-fames, rumours of the palace, 116, 29 credence {to give), to cause to be believed in, 216, 29 dangerous, to be feared, exposing to danger, 122, 33 dark, underhand, secret, 220, 19 debonair, agreeable, kindly, court- eous, 143, 33 declared, revealed, of a man whose sentiments are disclosed, 217, 13 defacement, obliteration, forgetful- ness of kindness, 55, 12 defrayed, of persons whose ex- penses are paid, 157, 3 demesnes, lands held by the owner for his own vise, 70, 30 denier^ Lat. dena7-ius, a Roman coin of about 10^. in value, but used to signify any small coin, 67, 10: 183, 22 17 disinterest (to), to relieve from ob- ligation, 55, 20 disnies (Fr. disme), tithes, tenth parts, a term employed in taxa- tion, 142, 27: 143, 5 dismiss himself (to), to resign vol- untarily, 200, 31 dispeopling, the emptying a country of people, 82, 22 distaste, a dislike, dissatisfaction, "5> 7 distasted 701th, out of love with, disliking, 163, 21 distemper (to), to spoil the charac- ter of, to lead wrong, 81, 26 dorynant, slumbering, ready to be waked up, 171, 6 doubt (to) = to fear, 130, 11 doubts, fears, 55, 10 drape {to), to manufacture cloth, drapery, the manufacturmg of cloth, 73, 27 drily, meanly, scurvily, 181, 11 dry, profitless, unproductive, 104, 7 ducats^ coins originally issued by the Italian dukes. They were generally of gold, 102, 19 edify (to), in the phrase to edify with — to produce an effect upon, 145, I embar (to), to put a stop to, for- bid, 119, 27 engage (to), to pledge, pawn or mortgage, 103, 14 engine, a plot or stratagem, 38, 19 entertain, to cherish, gratify, please, 181, 32 entertainment {a countenance of), manners of society, a company face, 204, 5 entire (n.), entirety, 143, 26 entire, trustworthy, faithful, 220, 8 escuage, a tax or feudal duty paid in lieu of military service, 148, 32 espials, spies, 105, 12: 100, 32: 116, 14, 17 evading, escaping, getting clear of, ^19. ^3 evangile, good news, a pledge of peace, end of all litigation, 134, 22 exasperate, embittered, exasperated, 77, 3 exhibition, maintenance, support, as the term is now used in schools and colleges, 200, 2 1 expect (to), to wait for, 64, i : 108, 24: 138, 18 expedite (adj.)» prepared for the march (of troops), 166, 9 expedited, issued, sent forth, 200, extraordinary (adv.), extraordina- rily, 158, II extreme (adv.), exceedingly, very, 202, 28 eye {to), to have regard unto, 54, 27 fact, act, deed, 50, 29: 105, 4 fancy (to), to have a liking for, lo think well of, 154, 14 GLOSSARY, 307 fast, secure, well-guarded, 157, 30 fasthanded, grasping, niggardly, 188, 14 fatal, fated, inevitable, 148, 5: 177, 14: 208, 2 favour, good looks, 105, 20 : 200, 7. felicity, good fortune, success, 35, 25 females = mothers, those which give birth, 126, 30 fifteenths, a tax of a fifteenth part of all the moveables of any person, 147, 25 fired, exposed to the fire, 166, 29 flies, a word used of King Henry's spies, apparently on account of their restless busy character, 216, 31 float {in), afloat, overflowing, 128, 7 forces, outbreaks of violence, mob-riots, 62, 21 fordone, laid aside, resigned, given up, 143. 7 forepassed, passed over, allowed to lapse (of the time for making a claim), 70, 6 fore-slowing, acting in a dilatory manner, dawdling, 152, 22 forth (to lie), to be lying carelessly about, 2 J 8, 16 fortune (to), to chance, to happen by accident, 172, 26 funerals, used, in the plural, of one funeral, 190, 1 gaol (to), to imprison, to put in gaol, 196, 27 gate-vein, the principal vein or artery which conveys most blood, used here metaphorically of the course of trade, 146, 4 gaze {at a), wonder-struck, 126, 5 glosses, explanations, interpreta- tions, 214, 14 goal, an object aimed at, or de- sired, 199, 16 gossip, godfather, 106, 1 grace (to fall into), to become a favourite, 68, 17 greece (Lat. gradus, Romance, grh), stairs or steps, 162, 17 gi'oat, a silver fourpence, 197, 15 habilitate, legally qualified, 15, 31 half-couraged, faint-hearted, 155, 13 half -face, partial resemblance, 191, 6 half pace, the uppermost step be- tween the chancel and the choir of a church, 98, 3 hand, signature to a bond, 102, 24 hand (to bear in), to make believe, 95. 4 , hardly, sparingly, thriftily, 148, II harebrain, foolish, mad, perhaps in allusion to the proverb "as mad as a March-hare," 204, 9 harness, armour, coats of mail, i49»3 head (to run upon a), to gather confusedly together, 130, 9 headship, patronage, favouring, 62, 27 hold, prison, confinement, 120, 21 homager y vassal, feudal subject, 44, 18: 81, 24 husband, a man of economy, 59, 5 husbandry, economy, thrift, 91, 5 idol, a sham personage or pre- tender to any character, as opposed to the real person, 24, 25: 113, 24: 169, 5 ill, weak, diseased, 208, 29 impatronise (to), to make oneself patron or master, 84, 27 impoisoner, a poisoner, 6, 8 import (to), to be of interest to (followed by an accusative with- out a preposition), 55, 33 importune, accepting no refusal, incessant, 138, 33 20- 3o8 GLOSSARY. impound {to), to shut up, enclose, confine, 154, 5 impropriate (to), to appropriate, gain for one's own, 17, 9: 216, 10 impznssance, want of power, weak- ness, 92, 15 incense, honorary offerings, signs of joy, 188, 29 inchoation, first efforts, commence- ment, 62, 22: 92, 6 incompetent, unfounded, without grounds, unsatisfactoiy, 31, i: unable to sue in a court of justice, as persons not yet of full age and others, 70, 8 indifferent, applying to all alike, impartial, 63, 15 indifferently, impartially, fairly, 187, 15 indubitate, undoubted, certain, true, 8, 19 inexpectcd, unexpected, 213, 24 infattsting, an omen of ill-luck, 179, 22 ingenerate, inborn, natural, 6, 17 inheritress, heiress, 11, 33 inlawed, under the protection of the law, opposite to outlawed, 16, I inn {to), to gather in, as of a harvest, 65, 6 innocents, idiots, fools, 207, 19 intelligences, informations, 115, 18 intend {to), \.o 2XKe.ndi to, 70, 18: 157, 7: 209, 3 interested, connected with, con- cerned with, T94, 12 interreign, an interregnum, 9, 10 invasive, partaking of the nature of an invasion, 44, 14 investing, taking possession of, occupying, 173, 2 inviolate, successful, unimpaired, unfailing, 212, 25 inward, intimate, confidential, 1 26, I inwardness, confidential commu- nication, 43, 27 itinerary, partaking of the cha- racter of a progress or legal visitation, 39, 3 joustings, tournaments, tilts, com- bats by appointment, 98, 32 jubile, a time of festivity or re- joicing, 183, 2 kindle {to), to provoke, to enrage, king-at-arms, the herald, who regulates (among other duties) the nature and granting of all armorial bearings, 99, 3 kings, used to signify a king and queen, 13, 33 : 98, 11 : loi, 24 knights-bachelors , a lower order of knighthood than knights-ban- nerets, 121, 10 knot, confederacy, united band, 113. 29 kno7vledge {to take), to admit, to let anything be known, no, 30 labour {to), to urge strongly, to press hard, no, 24 laics, laymen, 120, 27 land {to take) — to land, after a sea- voyage, loi, 2 land-lotcpej; a wandering vaga- bond, man of unsettled life, 105, 25 lay down {to), to put aside, give up, 162, 28 laying down, the giving up or laying aside, 149, 5 leave {to), to cease. 8r, 22 legiances (more usually spelt alle- giances), lawful services, 142, 7 let {to), to hinder or prevent, 119, 12 to fail, cease, leave off, 159, 15 levy {to), used of a siege, to raise it and depart, 77, 2 lie {to), to be imprisoned, 209, 9 GLOSSARY. 309 lieger{oiten vfx'iiienleiger or leidger), a messenger or ambassador, 199, 32: 216, 14 like [to have), to be nearly doing, to be in danger of doing a thing, 155, 3 likely, imminent, 142, 30 litigious, involving legal disputes, 84, 28 liver (n.), one who lives, 4, 1 livery, the distinctive dress of re- tainers, 191, 20 long of , owing to, 220, 14 make {to) somewhat for, to con- tribute to, to help on, 105, 31 malice (used of a disease), malig- nity, 12, 23 mannerhood, character for manli- ness, 71, 26 manured, manoeuvred, worked, 70, 26 marches, border lands, as the Eng- lish marches, 76, 6 : signifying those parts round Calais which ioined close to the French ter- ritory. master-reach, superior penetration, 217, 29 matronal, matronly, womanly, 199, mattacina (Ital.), a pantomime, or farce, 38, 7 mean, of middle rank, 201, 15 means, reason : by means of = by reason of, 114, 31 merchand[to), to traffic, to bargain for, 91, 30 mercurial (n.), a subtle, cunning fellow, 104, 19 minatory, of a threatening cha- racter, 73, 6 minished, diminished, 196, 19 mint, the coinage of money, regu- lations of the coinage, 213, 3 missives, letters of order, des- patches, 36, 15 mort-pays, wages received for sol- diers or sailors who are dead, 93' 22 much, in the sense of very quali- fying an adjective, 29, 5 nnirrey, a dark red colour, 112, 2 natural, naturalized, a settled de- nizen, 201, II nearness, niggardliness, parsimo- ny, 193, 12 neck {in the) = following close upon. Cf at the heels, loi, 23 nocent, guilty, 194, 13 noises, rumours, reports, 150, 13 notorious, conspicuous, for all to see, 28, 5 obnoxious, indebted to, like Lat. obnoxius, 43, 6 occasions, circumstances, purposes, exigencies, 202, 30 occurrentSy occurrences, 68, 27: 181, 29 of='v!\, 64, 13 : 159, ir offertory, an offering up, 11, 23 officious, helpful, of good service, 116, 23 often (adj.), frequent, 161, 4 : 176, 31 old, computed at an ancient valua- tion ; so old rent — rents which had not been raised from the old standard, and which might therefore be largely advanced, 123. 7 opinion, popular repute, common fame, 104, 6 oppignorated , pledged, given in pledge, 91, 31 orator, ambassador, 162, 9 ordnance, great guns, chief ar- tillery, 21, 6 out {to be), not to know one's part, to be at fault, 104, 21 over-liver, the longer liver of the two, 175, 5 overmerit, desert so great that no reward can repay it, 122, 29 over-rule {to), to set aside, 124, 8 3IO GLOSSARY. overseen, deceived, mistaken, look- ing beyond the mark, 163, 17 over-trading, bringing in too many imports, without taking away a corresponding quantity of ex- ports, 58, 32 over-7veighed, out-weighed, coun- terbalanced, 122, 27 oyer and terminei', the French title of courts of assize, having power to hear and decide, 1 78, 5 pact, agreement, compact, 7, 19 : 27, 30: 144, 23 pain, penalty, fine, punishment, pale, a term used for the parts round Calais, where English rule prevailed, 75, 32. The word is also used of those parts of Ireland where the law of England was recognized parricides, used to signify any murderers, 6, 13 partakers, partizans, confederates 38, 30* 76, 16: 109, 14: 120, 9^ i5i» 7 particular, a detailed description, 200, 6 particulars, some particular per- sons, 131, 5 pmrty, plaintiff in a legal cause, 213, 6 passable, tolerable, endurable, 40, 30 passages, circumstances which have occurred or come to pass, 107, 15 /aj««^ (adv.), exceedingly, 181, 8 pedantical, savouring of the school- master, 187, 29 peregrination, wandering to and fro, 107, 27 perforce, by force, 168, 21 person, character, 23, 14 perspective, inquisition, examina- tion, looking into, 25, 31 pesterous, pestiferous, pernicious, 196, 29 phthisic, phthisis, consumption, 209, 2 piece, a part to play, 207, 27 pieces, pictures, 4, 7 pill (to), to peel, strip bare, 149, i pilling, peeling, stripping of the hair {pilum), or skin {pellis)^ 142, 17, 27 place {to take), to prevail, to assert itself, 190, 1 4 {to take no) — io be unsuc- cessful, 68, 3 plausible, used in a good sense, as excellent, praiseworthy, 7, 30 plays, dramas in real life, 178, 13 plume {to), to pluck off the fea- thers, to strip bare, 103, 16 points, ribbons or laces wherewith to tie parts of the dress, 195, 33 poll (to), lit. to cut the hair, and hence, to shear down in any way, 148, 33 pontifical, priestly or papal, 220, 26 popular, vulgar, belonging to the common people, 90, 10: paying court to the mob, hunting after popularity, 150, i port, carriage, behaviour, expendi- ture, 93, 17 pose, sometimes spelt appose, to question, to examine, to puzzle, III, 5 postilled, labelled, docketed, an- notated, 193, 3 posts, messengers, post-haste, 203, 4 precedent, previous, going before, 7, 19 precept, a legal order or injunc- tion, 191, 7 prejudge (to), to have a prejudice against, 8, 17: 2 1 , 30 premier seisins, a feudal tax for the first entry on an inheritance, if the heir-at-law were of full age, 191, i6 prest, a loan (see notes), 18, 28 pretorian, like the power of the GLOSSARY. 311 praetor at Rome, according to the rule of equity, 62, 8, 16 pre7Jent, to anticipate, 166, 17 principal (n.), chief persons, 52, pnvado, a private and confidential retainer, 108, 22 privateness, confidential communi- cation, 216, 2 procedures, the money produced by any sale, 64, 32 progress, a royal journey or tour through the land, n, 7: 39, 2, 4: 128, 23: 130, 31 property, peculiarity of character, 77. 20 providence, foresight, 69, 28 puissance, might, power, 158, 14 puissant, mighty, powerful, 151, 13 punctos, nice observances, precise ceremonial, 97, 5 purchase, gain, emolument, 81, 28 //// by {to), to deprive of, or ex- clude from, 201, 7 put on, instigated, prompted, 39, 17 quail {jto), to depress, cast down, 126, I quarrel {to) = X.o quarrel with, or complain against, 173, 14 questmongers, paid spies, 192, 10 quiet {to), to set at rest, 70, 19 quire, chorus, companionship, 97, 27 quit {to), to pay for, repay, 135, 2 rake-hell, a reckless, heedless, pro- digal person, perhaps a corrup- tion of the Yx. racaille, 165, 27 rampiers, ramparts, banks of earth raised for pirotection, 165, 21 range {to), to regulate, bring to order, 55, 26 rascal (adj.), rabble, 130, 20 reach, intention, object in view, "9, 33 ready, in apt condition for: ready for assault = in proper state to be assaulted, 102, 12 receit, a place of ambush or lying- in- wai:, 154, 20 reception, recovery, re-taking, 46, i reciprocal (n.), something given in return, a qtiid pro quo, 205, 23 reclaim {to), to tame, or make manageable, 14, 29 recover {to), to gain, to win (with no sense of previous loss), 155, 2 redintegrate, restored, renewed, 42, 9 refrain {to), (v. act.), to keep in check, or put a rein on, 31, 16 : 190. 13 regality, royal prerogative, 87, 5 regiment, rule, government, 5, 2 religious, bound by religious vows, 5, i«. rehictation, struggling against, op- position, 188, 18 remembrance, a memorandum, r93, 4 r envoy {to), to send back again, 79. 3 re-purchase {to), to recover, win back again, 42, 18 resiance, residence, place of abode, (called a mansion, 147, 7), 119, 25: 188, 4 respect — reason, in the phrase, in respect of = lay reason of, be- cause of, 127, 14 respective, respectful, shewing re- gard, 217, 4 respects, objects of regard or con- sideration, 190, 25 retainer, an adherent, one who forms part of a retinue, 64, 22 retire (n. ), the withdrawal (used of an army), 61, 21 retract (n. ), a retreat, opportunity of withdrawal, 36, 4 retributioji, recompense, reward, ^% 19 rid (of land), worked, cultivated, attended to, 70, 28 robe, used to indicate those who 312 GLOSSARY. wear the long robes common to academic pursuits, hence applied to lawyers and clerics, 127, 5 rode (more usually now spelt raid), an inroad, invasion, 145, 5 rotrndyopen, straightforward, with- out ceremony, 67, 26 roundly, openly, without circum- locution, 50, 8: 51, 27; 59, 27: 174, 13: 208, 8 rout, a gathering of the rabble, 64, rout {to), to assemble in a rabble, 66, 7 ruffie {to), to contest, raise a dis- turbance, 191, 31 runagate, a fugitive and vagabond, 145, 29 sad (p. part, of the verb set), solemn, staid, 179, 26: 218, 8 sadly, solemnly, persistently, im- moveably, 122, 13 scaladoes, attempts at scaling walls, 165, 22 schoolman, one skilled in scholastic theology, 185, 20 seen in {to be), to be skilled in, or well acquainted with, 1 7 r , 15 seigniory, lordship, feudal supe- riority, 78, 29 : 79, 6 set forth (of money), invested, 189, 17 sevei'al {ad}.), separate, 209, 20 severalty {in), separately, (here) for separate use, 187, 18 shore {to), to prop, support, 134, 13 shut, confined, kept close, 126, 26 shut up {to), to bring to an end, conclude, 187, 8 silenced, not talked of, 202, 3 size {to), to bring to one size, to regulate the size of, 93, 32 skeins, short knives or daggers, used by Irishmen and High- landers, 37, 15 skill {to), to signify, to be of con- sequence ; it skills not = it mat- ters not, 100, 31 skill {to), to know how to do, to understand, 196, i spials = espials, spies, informers, 216, 22, 27 squibs, showy projects, flashy, boastful designs, 195, 3 staddles, close growths of young trees left uncut, 72, 12 standard, the fixed gauge of weights and measures, 93, 30 state {to), to treat with ceremony of state, 77, 19 state {to keep), to wear a stately or courtly manner, 11, 19: 107,8: 146, 5 : 215, 17 stay (n.), temperance, steadiness, self-control, 17, 5 stellionate, unlawfully depriving a merchant of his money, wares or bargain ; fraudulent mer- chanting, 62, 22 stick {to), to hesitate, to have scruples at, 103, 15 still, constantly, 96, 6 stoop {to), (of a hawk), to descend upon its prey, 206, 12 stout = stout-hearted, courageous, 164, 26: 178, 15 stout (adv.), courageously, spirit- edly, 55, 27 strangeness, an affectation of dis- tance, and superiority, 215, 23 suddenly, used in the simple sense of soon, quickly, 144, 28 sufficiency, capability, mental power, judgment, 185, 16 sugared (of language), made pa- latable, sweet, acceptable, 84, siumnarily , in a brief short form, 74, 12 surcharge {to), to impute to an- other what does not belong to him, 177, 10 sure (interj.), surely, 192, 23 sure {to work), to leave no chance for slips or failures, 123, 11 surmise {to), to deem, judge, suggest, 138, 29 GLOSSARY. 313 take {to), to make progress, to advance, 208, 32 : to succeed, to prosper, 61,-27 take on, to continue, used of a journey, 87, 32 tall, courageous, spirited, 157, 26 tallages, tolls, taxes, 142, 28 : i43» 5: 201, 22 temper, degree, influence, amount, 189, 32 : temperature, 13, 5 tenances, tenancies, occupations of land, 70, 28 texture, anything woven, 195, 32 therefore, on that account, Lat. propterea, 57. 3° • 1 33. 7 thread {by the) = one at a time, like beads on a string, 126, 10 toil, mesh, net, entanglement, 153, 2 tokens, symbols of clanship, or retainership, badges, 58, 7 tourney, tournament, jousting, tilt- ing, 98, 32 towards — coming towards, in a threatening wise, 95, 17 toys, amusements, sports, games, 187, 28 tract (of time), length, duration, protraction, 194, 33 trains, underhand schemes, plots, 6, 21 translating, transferring, removing, 119, 26 t?'averse {to), to offer objection to, to plead against, 191, 18 triplicity, an union of three, a triple band, 151, 8 trow {to), to think, believe, 117, 23 tutelage, the right of a guardian over his ward, 78, 29 under-propping, supporting from beneath, 134, 13 under -set, supported, strengthened, 146, 7 unrip {to), to undo, tear to pieces, 160, 13 unworthy, unsuitable for, improper, 6, 2 tip07i, on account of, e.g. to act zipoji discontent, 112, 12, 13: 127, 16 ?//ance, 100 ; despatched by Henry to visit Philip, King of Castile, at Weymouth, 203 ; marries a daughter of Lord Rivers, 269 ; serves in Flanders, 297 Astley, one of Warbeck's Council, 163 Astwood, Thomas, apprehension of, 120; pardon, ib.', one of Waibeck's keepers in the Tower, 176 Atlantis, Plato on the, 172, 286, 287 Attainder, bills of, 234 Attainders, 14—17 ; reversal of, 14, 15 Attaint, act concerning, upon a false verdict, 134, 135, 280 Audley, Lord, accepted by the Cornish rebels as their general, 149, 150 ; taken at the battle of Blackheath, 155 ; an adherent of Warbeck, 283; beheaded on Tower Hill, 156 Averroes, Arabian writer on medi- cine, 83, 266 Awater, John, Mayor of Cork, executed with Warbeck, 178, 289 Ayala, Peter d', see under Hialas, Peter Ay ton Castle, capture of, by the Earl of Surrey, 158 Bacon, Francis, created Viscount St Alban, 224; condemnation, ib.', remission of his sentence by James I., ib. Bajazet II., Emperor of the Turks, 83, ^65 Bannerets created after the battle of Blackheath, 155 Barbadico, Augustino, Duke of Venice, 132 ; doge of Venice, 279 Barley, William, sails into Flan- ders for information about the supposed Duke of York, 113; one of the last supporters of Warbeck, 126; receives promise of pardon for the betrayal of Warbeck, 273 ; pardoned, 277 Barry, William Lord, attainted of high treason, 271 Barton, Elizabeth, the holy maid of Kent, 123, 124; executed, 276 ; where to find her history, ib. Bath, knights of the, 121, 275 Beacons upon the coasts, watch- ing of, 135, 280 Beaton, the mill at, where James III. of Scotland was killed, 68, 259 Beaufort Castle, 224 INDEX. 317 Bedford, Jasper, Duke of, at the head of the army opposed to Lord Lovel, 20, 21; submission of the hostile army to the Duke, 2 1 ; leader of the army against the false Plantagenet, 34, 35 ; General in the army against France, 100; sickness and death, 154 Bedford, Duchess of, visited by Edward IV., 244 "Benedictus" sung by the slaves of the Moors after the conquest of Granada, 97, 269 Benevolence Tax, the, 92, 93, 134, 197 ; this tax devised by Edward IV., 92, 93; abolished by Richard III., 93, 226; statu- tory recognition of the, 280 Bermondsey, Elizabeth the Queen Dowager confined in the nun- nery of, 24, 27, 28, 243 ; dies there, 29 Bethlehem, house of, Warbeck takes refuge in, 175, 287 Bevers, Lord, a commissioner con- cerning intercourse between Flanders and England, 146 ; lieutenant and governor-general of Artois, 282 Bewley in the New Forest, War- beck's flight to, 167, 286; takes sanctuary there, 167 Blackheath, Henry's leniency after the rebellion of, 213 j the Corn- ish rebels at, 150, 152 ; battle of> I54» 155 Blewet, one of Warbeck's keepers in the Tower, 176 Bodmin, Warbeck at, 163 Bohemians urged by Pope J^^lius to make war upon Thracia, 184 Bons-Hommes of the Trinity, The religious order called, 264 Borderland feuds, 281, 282 Borgia, Caesar, hostage from Pope Alexander to Charles VIII. , 278 Borgia's bark, 267 Bosworth Field, battle of, 5 Boulogne, Henry VII. at, 96 ; the army for the invasion of France removes to, 102; siege of, 102 Bourchier, Sir John, redemption of, by Henry, 18, 237 ; distin- guishes himself in the Cornish rebellion, 237; made lieutenant of Calais, ib.; translates Frois- sart's Chronicle, 237; death, ib. Bourchier, Thomas, Abp. of Can- terbury and Cardinal, Henry VII. dines with, 13; Richard III. and Henry VII. crowned by, 232 ; a benefactor to Ely Cathedral and the Universities, ib. Bourges, Duke of Orleans, a pri- soner at, 255 ; Bourn Monastery, the Lady Mar- ;■ garet a benefactress to, 225 Brabant, vessels for, robbed by Lord Ravenstein, 94 Brackenbury, lieutenant of the Tower, and the murder of the Duke of York, 114,273 Brampton, Lady, accompanies Warbeck to Portugal, 108 Brandon, Charles, see under Suf- folk, Duke of Bray, Sir Reginald, sent by Henry to the Lord Mayor respecting a loan, 18, 237 ; mentioned by Warbeck as being in favour with the King, 1 42 ; designs of the Cornish rebels against, 149, 150; Henry's avarice imputed to, 214; death, 190, 237 Bray brook, James, sent on a com- mission concerning the Queen of Naples, and afterwards to the court of Ferdinand, 199, 295 ; payments to, 295 Bretay, Thomas, Sheriff of Lon- don, 231 Brittany, Duke of, see under Fran- cis, Duke of Brittany Brittany, Duchy of, Charles VIIL desires the re-annexation of, 42, 43 ; communications between 3i8 INDEX. the Kings of England and France concerning the Duchy, 49 ; de- feat of the Britons at the battle of St Alban, 60, 61; speech of Charles's Commissioners con- cerning the war in, 80, 81 ; pos- session of insured to Charles, 103 ; invaded by the French, 255 Brook, Lord, see under Willough- by, Sir Robert Broughton, Sir Thomas, conceals Lord Lovel, 21; his influence in Lancashire, 31 ; arranges means of communication with the Earl of Lincoln, ib.; with the rebel forces, 35, 240; slain at the battle of Stoke, 37 Bruges in arms against Maximilian, 75 ; renders assistance to Lord Ravenstein in the taking of Sluice, 94; the Duke of Saxony at, 94, 95 ; blocked by the tak- ing of the town of Dam, 95 ; the inhabitants submit to Maxi- milian, 96 Buckingham, Edward Duke of, his dignities and possessions re- stored by Henry, 18 ; hastens with an army to Exeter, 1 66 ; attainted and executed, 235 ; table showing his close relation- ship to Edward IIL and Henry vn.. 236 Buckingham, Henry Duke of, re- volt against Richard HL, 227, 228 Burgundy, Duchy of, allied to England, 56, 253 ; strength of, 90; Louis XL sends forces to take possession of, 253 ; he is recognized as sovereign of, tb. Bury St Edmund's, arrival of Henry at, 34 Butler, supremacy of the family in Kilkenny, 244 Bye-laws, statute concerning, 196, 294 Cabot, Sebastian, discoveries of, 171, 172, 286; death, ib. Calais, Garrison of, 76 ; by-word of Charles VHL respecting, 77 ; meeting of the English ambas- sadors with Lionel, Bp. of Con- cordia at, 87 ; the army for the French invasion to winter at, 100, loi ; Henry at, loi, 103, 180 Cambridge, visit of Henry VH. to, 245 Capel, Sir William, compounds with the King, 1 28 ; prosecuted, 128, 209, 277 ; conveyed to the Tower, 209 ; pardoned, 277 Capital offences, 62-64 Caramania, King of, assists Gemes in his revolution against his brother Bajazet IL, Emperor of the Turks, 265 Carew, Sir John, at Weymouth, 203, 297 Carews, the, hasten with troops to Exeter, 166 ; notice of, 285 Castello, Adrian de, the Pope's ambassador to mediate between the King of Scotland and the rebels, 68 ; his preferments, 68, 260 ; conspires with others against the life of Pope Leo, 68, 69 ; deposed by him, 260 ; his supposed murder, ib. Castile, Maximilian urges Henry to lay claim to the government of, 298 Catesby, William, Esquire of the body of Richard III., 234 ; at- tainder, 17 ; execution, 235 Catharine of Aragon, birth, 291 ; compared with Hesperus, 187; arrival at Plymouth, 186; mar- ried to Prince Arthur, i8f>, 187, 291 ; details preceding the mar- riage, 291 ; marriage portion and settlement, 187 Catharine, Lady, daughter of Ed- ward IV., marriage with William INDEX. 319 Courtney, Earl of Devonshire, 194, 280 Cecilia, daughter of Edward IV., married to John Lord Wells, 280 Censor, office of, 62, 257 Chamber, John a, at the head of the Northern subsidy rioters, (i()\ captured ib.\ executed in great state at York, ib. Chandos, Lord, created Earl of Bath, 18, 235 Chancery, court of, 62, 257 Charles, Prince, afterwards Charles L, Bacon dedicates his book to, 3. 4. 223 Charles VIIL, King of France, anxious to acquire the Duchy of Britain, 42, 43; resolves to make war upon it, 43 ; sends ambas- sage to Henry, 43-45 ; betrothed to the daughter of Maximilian, 45» 78) 233 ; receives Henry's ambassador craftily, 47 ; con- sents to Henry's arbitration, ib.\ invades Britain, 49 ; besieges Nantes, ib. ; sends Bernard D'Aubigny to Henry, 50 ; as- sists Henry in the recovery of his kingdom, 55, 252 ; Henry sends fresh ambassadors to, 60 ; enmity between him and Henry, 77 ; sends an ambassage to Henry to treat for peace, and concerning the marriage of the Duchess of Britain, 78, 79 ; speech of the ambassadors, 79- 84 ; intends transporting forces into Graecia, 82 ; designs the overthrow of the Ottoman em- pire, 82 ; claims the guardian- ship of the Duchess of Britain, 255; marries her, 88, 255, 267; objections to this marriage, 263 ; makes overtures of peace to Henry, 10 1 ; restores Russignon and Perpignian to Spain, ib. ; peace with Henry, 102 ; secures the possession of Britain, 103; sends to Warbeck, promising him assistance, 109; his recep- tion of him, 1 10 ; dismisses him, ib. ; seizes Ostia, 131 ; protects the liberty of Pisa, ib. ; intends to recover the kingdom of Naples, 45; his claim thereto, 249, 264 ; determines to make war upon it, 82 ; his conquest and loss of Naples, 131, 132, 278, 297 ; differences with Ludo- vico Sfortia, Duke of Milan, 131, 132; arranges a peace with him, 279; Italian league against, 131, 132, 278; recommends Warbeck to the King of Scot- land, 136; sends embassage to Henry from Calais, 156, 157 ; Gemes delivered up to him, 266 ; his accession, 47, 249 ; death, 175, 287 Charles the Bold, marries Mar- garet sister of Edward IV., 253 ; slain at the battle of Nancy, ib. Charles, Prince of Castile, con- cerning his marriage with Mary, Henry's second daughter, i8i, 201, 208, 210, 290; his pro- posed marriage with the daugh- ter of the King of France to be broken off, 201 ; admitted to the Order of the Golden Fleece by Henry, 205 Charles the Hardy, of Burgundy, marriage of, 32 ; death, 245 Cheapside, Warbeck in the stocks at, 176 Chester, Earl of, made a Royal title by Henry III., 223 Chester, Richard, Sheriff of Lon- don, 231 Child, Alwinus, the founder of Bermondsey nunnery, 243 Children of Tribute, Turk's com- missioners for, 105, 270 Cholmondeley, Richard, in favour with the King, 142 ; guardian of the possessions of John Egger- ton, 281 320 INDEX. Chronological table, xvii.-xx. City Companies, Reception of Henry VII. by the, ii, 231 Clare, County, Supremacy of the O'Briens in, 244 Clarence, Duke of, Warbeck's tale in his confession that the Irish said he was the, 109 ; married to the eldest daughter of the Earl of Warwick, 226 ; dispute with Richard III. con- cerning the disposal of the wealth of the Earl of Warwick, ib, ; Richard the supposed contriver of the Duke's death, 6, 226 Clergy, privileges of the, 243, 258, 289, 294; further notices of, 302, 303 — convicted to be branded, 64 Clifford, Sir Robert, sails into Flanders for information about the supposed Duke of York, 113; is introduced to Warbeck by the Duchess of Burgundy, ib.; de- clares himself satisfied concern- ing his identity with Richard Duke of York, ib. ; Henry's en- deavour to draw him from the side of Warbeck, 116, 273; is won over to the King, ib.; arrives in England, 121 ; meets Henry in the Tower and dis- closes his information, ib. ; said to have been a spy of Henry's in Flanders, 125 ; chamberlain of Berwick-upon-Tweed, 273 ; the raid of the Scotch into the North of England frustrated by his treachery, 275 ; pardoned, ib. Cloth, statute limiting the price of, 73 ; resolutions concerning the sale of, 289 Cobham, John Lord, influence in Kent, 150; serves in the expe- dition on behalf of Maximilian against the French, 283 ; his death, ib. Colet, Dean, schoolhouse of, 206, 2Q7 Colliweston, the Lady Margaret conducted thither, on her way to Scotland, 189 Collusion, informations by, 73, 262 Colnham, Humphrey and Thomas Stafford take sanctuary at, 21, 241 Colonna faction, 247 Columbus, Bartholomseus, voyage of, 172 Columbus, Christopher, discoveries of, 171, 172, 286 Colyngbourne, William, of his rhyme concerning Lord Lovel, RatclifTe and Catesby, 234 ; execution of, ib. Commines, Ph. de, envoy of Charles VIII. at Venice, 278 Common Laws, 62, 256 ; as dis- tinguished from Statute laws, 256 Common Pleas, Court of, 62, 256 Common Recovery, account of, Concordia, Lionel, Bishop of, sent by Pope Alexander VI. to medi- ate between the Kings of Eng- land and France, 87 ; received by Henry, 88 ; causes Gemes to be delivered up to Pope Inno- cent VIIL, 265 Congressall, Lord, Captain of Warbeck's guard at the French Court, no, 272 Corcutus abdicates the Turkish throne in favour of his father, 265 Cordes, Philip Lord, serves in the wars of Charles of Burgundy, 263 ; sends forces to the assist- ance of Lord Ravenstein, 75 ; besieges Newport, 76 ; the siege raised, 77 ; makes overtures of peace to Henry from the French King, 10 1 ; the English ambas- sadors meet him, 102 Corffe castle, 281 Cork, arrival of Warbeck al, 109 INDEX. 321 Cornwall, rebellion in, 148- 150 ; Warbeck advised to hasten thither, 163 ; he goes, ib. Cornwall, Duke of, creation of the title, 223 Cotton, Sir R., the possessor of the original proclamation of Warbeck on entering Northum- berland, 1 40 note Countebalt, James, Maximilian's ambassador, 99, 269 Courtney, Edward, created Earl of Devon, 13, 233 Cradock, Sir Matthew, married to Lady Catharine Gordon, 280; buried in Swansea Church, ib. Cressenor, Thomas, 120 Cressy, battle of, 90 Croyland Monastery, The Lady Margaret a benefactress to, 225 Curson, Sir Robert, made a spy by Henry upon the Duke of Suffolk in Flanders, 193, 194; returns to England, 194; re- ceived with favour by the King, ib.', excommunicated, 194,294; pardoned, 294; created a Baron of the Roman empire, 293; documents relating to his com- munications with Maximilian concerning Edmund de la Pole, ib. Cutte, John, mentioned by War- beck as being in favour with the King, 142; pardoned, 281 Dam, the town of, 94; the means by which the Duke of Saxony took it, 95 Darcy, Thomas Lord, appointed a commissioner for the fining of the rebels, 169; his appoint- ments, 286; marches to the re- lief of Norham Castle, ib.', sur- renders Pontefract Castle to the rebels, ib.', beheaded, ib. Daubeney, Sir Giles, created Lord Daubeney, 18, 235; appoint- ments, 76, 10^, 125, 235 ; Henry B. H. sends him an army of 1000 men to aid Maximilian, 76; increased from the garrisons of Calais, &c., ib.', victory of the English, ib.', appointed to negotiate a Treaty of Peace with Charles, 102 ; the forces under his command are detained for the King's service against the Cornish rebels, 151— 154 ; encounter with the rebels, 1 54 ; sent with a force to Exeter, 166 Daubeney, William, keeper of the jewels of the "pretensed" King Richard, 274; apprehension and execution, 120 D'Aubigny, Bernard, sent by Charles VIH. to Henry, con- cerning the Duchy of Britain, 50 D'Aubigny, Stuart, leads the French army into Milan, 290 David I., King of Scotland, the founder of Melrose Abbey, 287 Deal, Warbeck arrives upon the coast of, 129 Deane, Henry, Prior of Lanthony, made Chancellor of Ireland, 127; translated to Salisbury, 277; succeeds Morton as Arch- bishop of Canterbury, 277 Deptford bridge, the Cornish rebels from, are met by Lord Daubeney, 154 Derby, Thomas Earl of, in the army drawn up for the invasion of France, 100 Desmond, Earl of, Warbeck ap- plies to him for assistance, 109, 271 De Vere, Earl of Oxford, 303 De Vere, Sir R., brother of the Earl of Oxford, slain at the siege of Sluice, 96 Devonshire, Edward Earl of, in the army for the invasion of France, lOo Devonshire, William Earl of, marries Catharine daughter of 21 322 INDEX. Edward IV., 280; hastens with troops to Exeter, 166, 285 ; taken into custody, 194 Digby, Sir John, lieutenant of the Tower, 176; Warbeck and his keepers form a conspiracy to murder him, 176, 177; employs men to arrest the servants bribed by Warbeck to efiect his escape, 289 Digby, Simon, payment to, in connection with the funeral of Sir W. Stanley, 276 Dighton, John, examined touch- ing the murder of the Duke of York, 114; Tirrel's horse- keeper, 273 Dixmude, siege of, by the French, 75» 76 Dorset, Thomas Marquis of, at- tainted by Richard III., 237; money sent to Paris by Heniy for his redemption, 18, 237 ; hastens to the King to clear himself, 34; is met on the way and conveyed to the Tower, ib, ; liberated, 40; in the army for the invasion of France, 100 Drapery, statute concerning, 73 Drogheda, statute of, called Poyn- ings' Law, 268, 277 Dudley, Edmund, Henry's agent in his extortions upon his people, 190-192, 292 ; the people's complaints of his oppressions, 209 ; Speaker of the House of Commons, 195 ; Henry is touched with remorse at Dud- ley's deeds, 214; execution, 298 Dutch fishing upon the coasts of England, 206 Edgecombe, Sir Richard, sent to James III. of Scotland to con- clude a peace, 41 ; grants to, 248; appointed controller of the King's mines in Devon and Cornwall, ib. Edmmid, third son of Henry VII., birth, baptism, and death of, 175. 287 Edward I., King of England, his wisdom as a lawgiver, 69, 260 ; creates his son Edward Prince of Wales, 223 Edward III., King of England, creates the Black Prince Duke of Cornwall, 223 Edward IV., King of England, Treaty of peace with Lewis XL, 6, 227; the deviser of the tax called a Benevolence, 92 ; said to have been the godfather of Warbeck, 105, 106, 271; his love of pleasure, 226, 227; visits the Duchess of Bedford, 244; flight, ib.', genealogical table at the death of, 229, 230 Edward V., King of England, murder of, 6, 279 Edward the Black Prince, brings John King of France a prisoner to England, 267 Edward Plantagenet, The counter- feit, see under Simnel Edward Plantagenet, conveyed from the Castle of Sheriff Hut- ton to the Tower, 9, 10; sinister rumours concerning the King's intention to put him to death, 22, 25 ; rumoured escape from the Tower, 25 ; ordered to be shown to the people, 28; paraded through the principal streets of London, 29; taken to St Paul's in solemn procession, 30 Egremond, Sir John, leader of the Northern Subsidy rioters, 66 ; flight into Flanders, ib.\ grants to, from the lands of Francis Lord Lovel, 259 Elizabeth, widow of Edward IV., takes sanctuary at Westminster, 244; appeals to Edward for the reversal of the attainder of her husband, 244; her supposed connection with the counterfeit Plantagenet scheme, 24 ; con- INDEX. 323 fined in the nunnery at Ber- mondsey, 24, 27, 28, 243; seizure of her estates, 24, 28; her varied fortunes, 28, 29 ; death and burial, 29; the foun- dress of Queens' College, Cam- bridge, 29, 244 Elizabeth of York, Queen of Henry VIL, rumour that Richard III. wished to marry her, 226; conveyed from the Castle of Sheriff Hutton to London, 9, 10; proposed mar- riage to, by Henry, 10, 11 ; her distress at the reports of the King's intended marriage with Anne, Duchess of Brittany, 12 ; her marriage, 19; the King's treatment of her, 19, 22; coro- nation, 22, 39, 40, 242 ; has no influence over the King, 215; death, 190, 292 Ely Place, Serjeants' feast at, 131 Empson, Richard, mentioned by Warbeck as being in favour with the King, 142; Attorney- General of the Duchy of Lan- caster, 281 ; the agent of Henry in his extortions, 190—192, 292 ; memorandum from one of his account-books, 193 ; imprisoned, 210, 298; Henry is touched with remorse at the deeds of, 214; executed, 298 England, armistice with Brittany in the time of Richard IIL, 252 ; Henry stops commerce with Flanders, 1 19, 274 ; English banished from Flanders, 120; treaty with Flanders, 146 ; union of England and Scotland, 223 ; commission appointed to enquire into the English pos- sessions in France, 281 Erasmus, his money seized for the Royal Exchequer, 235 ; visits the shrine of the Virgin at Wal- singham, 245 Escuage, service of, 148, 283 Essex, Henry Earl of, in the army drawn up for the invasion of France, roo; leads the King's forces against the Cornish rebels, 152-154, 270 Estaples, peace of, 102, 270 Exeter besieged by Warbeck, 164; its defence by the inhabitants, 164, 165; Henry sends troops to, 166; the siege raised, 166; joyful entry of the King, 168, 286 Exchequer, court of, 62, 234, 256, 257 Exchequer, statute for the dis- persing of the standard of the, 93, 268 Faro, Catharine de, the mother of Perkin Warbeck, 106 Ferdinand, King of Spain, Henry hopes for the alliance of, 52 ; a probable ally of England against the French, 90; doubt- fulness of this, 91, 92; war against the Moors, 91 ; treats with France for the restoration of Roussillon and Perpignian, 91; commissioners of enquiry despatched by Henry to the Court of, 199-201 ; threatens to marry again if Philip refuses him the government of Castile, 20 r ; reported design of mar- riage with Madame de Fois, 202, 207 ; Henry favourably compared with, 220 Ferdinand and Isabella, Letters from, concerning the final con- quest of Granada from the Moors, 96, 97, 268, 269; Fer- dinand's ostentation after the conquest, 97 ; parties to the Italian league against Charles VIII., 132, 278 Ferdinand I., King of Naples, 82, 264 Ferdinand II,, King of Naples, 21 2 324 INDEX. withdraws from Naples, 278 ; death, 279 Ferrers, Lord, attainder of, 17, .234 Fines, statute of, 70, 226, 260, 261 First-fruits, 238 Fisher, John, Bp of Rochester, beUef in EUzabeth Barton the cause of his fall, 276 Fitzgerald, Thomas, Lord Deputy of Ireland, 26, 244 Fitzgerald, house of, exercises su- premacy in Leinster and Mun- ster, 244 Fitzwalter, Lord, Chief Justice of the forests beyond the Trent, 273; sides with the supposed Duke of York, 113; appre- hended, 120; proposals to his keeper for his escape, 120, 274; beheaded, 273 Flammock, Thomas, a ringleader in the Cornish rebellion, 148; taken at the battle of Black- heath, 155; executed at Tyburn, 156 Flanders, The Irish rebels send privy messengers into, 30; Earl of Lincoln and Lord Lovel in, 31; rebellion of Maximilian's subjects in, 74, 75 ; speech of Charles's commissioner concern- ing the war in, 81, 82; arrival of the Duke of Saxony to settle affairs between Maximilian and his subjects, 94 ; English trade with, stopped, 119, 274; banish- ment of the Flemings from England, 119; treaty with England for a renewal of inter- course, 1 46; the Flemings sub- jects of Burgundy, 8r, 264 Foderingham, Cecile Duchess of York, mother of Edward IV. buried at, 132 Fois, Madame de, reported de- sign of Ferdinand to marry her, 202, 207, 295 Fornovo, French victory at, 279 Forrest, Miles, and the murder of the Duke of York, 1 14, 273 Fouldrey, landing of the rebel forces with their pretended King at, 35> 245 Fox, Richard, Bp of Exeter, &c., called into the Privy Council of the King, 19; preferments, 19, 238; one of the ambassadors to James III. of Scotland, 41 ; meets Lord Cordes concerning treaty of peace with France, 102; mentioned by Warbeck as being in favour with the King, 142; one of the commissioners for the renewal of intercourse between England and Flanders, 146 ; sends to the Earl of Surrey for succour against the King of Scotland, 157; fortifies Norham Castle, ib.\ treats with the Scotch commissioners concerning peace, 159, 160; sends deprecatory letters to the Scottish King with regard to the affray at Norham, 174; goes to the King of Scot- land, ib.', they meet at Melrose, ib.\ asked by the King to favour his marriage with the Lady Mar- garet, Henry's daughter, ib.\ master of the ceremonies at the marriage of Prince Arthur, 186; treaty of marriage between Charles Prince of Castile, and Mary daughter of Henry VII. perfected by him at Calais, 210; executor to the Lady Margaret, 238 France, smallness of the army, 72, 90; urged by Pope Julius to war upon Graecia, 184; titles given by the Popes to Kings of, 264 Franche-Comte, Louis XI. sends forces to take possession of the 253 Francis, Duke of Brittany, assists Lewis Duke of Orleans, 43, 53; INDEX. 325 under the influence of the Duke of Orleans, 48 ; his affairs direct- ed by him, ib.\ Charles VIII. makes war upon him, 53 ; Henry sends Lord Brook to his assist- ance with an army, 60; decay of memory, 249, 250; death, 61, 248, 255 Francis, Lord of Luxemburg;, an ambassador of Charles to Henry concerning the marriage of the Duchess of Britain, 78, 263 Frederick III. Emperor of Ger- many, wars upon Flanders, 75 Friesland, vessels on their way to, robbed by Lord Ravenstein and his confederates, 94 Frion, Stephen, Clerk of the Signet, &c. , 271, 272; enters the service of the French King, 109; sent by him to Warbeck with promises of aid, ib.-, War- beck's chief counsellor, no Frowick, one of the King's ser- jeants-at-law, 299 Fulfords, the, hasten with troops to Exeter, 166, 285 Gabato, Sebastian, see under Cabot Gagvien, Robert, one of the am- bassadors sent by Charles to Henry to treat for peace, 78, 79; warned to quit England, 88, 267 ; his libel against Henry, ib.\ in charge of the Royal Library at Paris, 264; favourite ofCharles VIII. and Lewis XII., ib.'y death, ib. Galeot, James, French commander, slain at the battle of St Aubin, 60, 255; buried at Angers, 255 Gaols, statute concerning the Pa- tents of, 196, 294 Garter, order of the, bestowed upon Alphonso, Duke of Cala- bria, 103; ditto upon King Philip, 205 Garth, mentioned by Warbeck as being in favour with the King, 142 Gascoigne, regulations concerning the importation of wine from, 72 Gemes, brother of Bajazet Em- peror of the Turks, 83; raises an army against his brother, 265; twice defeated, ib.\ takes refuge in Rhodes, ib.; Charles desires his assistance in his de- signs upon Naples and Grsecia, 265; delivered up to Pope In- nocent VIII., 265, 266; the Pope hands him over a prisoner to Charles, 266; death, ib. Germany, empire of, formerly called the Holy Roman Empire, 233 . Ghent in arms against Maximilian, 75 ; renders assistance to Lord Ravenstein in the taking of Sluice, 94 Giraud Torlonia, the palace, 260 Golden Fleece, Prince Charles of Castile admitted to the Order of the, 205; institution of the Order, 297 Goldenston, Thomas, Prior of Christ Church, Canterbury, one of the ambassadors from Henry to the King of France, 87; his return, 88 Gordon, Lady Catharine, James IV. of Scotland consents to her marriage with Warbeck, 140; brought before Henry, 167, j68; well treated by him, 168; mar- ries Sir Mathew Cradock, 280; buried at Swansea, ib. Grsecia, Charles's intention to transport his forces into, 82, 86; Pope Julius urges a war upon, 184 Granada, conquest of, 83, 97, 268, 269 ; thanksgiving in St Paul's, 97. 98 , Green, Sir Thomas, arrested, 194, 293, 294 326 INDEX, Greenwich, departure of the King from, on his way to invade France, loo Grey, Sir John, the first husband of Elizabeth Wydeville, after- wards Queen of Edward IV., killed at the battle of St Albans, 227 Guienne, Henry's claim to, 86 Guildford, Sir Richard, employ- ments under Henry, 131, 277, 281 Guines, garrison of, 76 Haddon, Richard, Sheriff of Lon- don, arms the citizens against the Cornish rebels, 153, 284; knighted, 284 Hammes castle, 193 ; garrison, Hastings, Lord, favourite of Edward IV. and Richard III., 215, 298; executed, 244, 298 Hawis, alderman of London, death of, 210 Henry III., King of England, be- stows the title of Earl of Chester on his son Prince Edward, 223 Henry IV., King of England, in- tervals of peace during the reign of, 10; intends making an ex- pedition into the Holy Land, 82, 83, 264 Henry VL, King of England, in- tervals of peace during the reign of, 10; crowned in f^ ranee, 90, 267; assisted by the King of Scotland, 139, 280; restoration of, 244; death, 6; did he die of grief or was he murdered by the direction of Richard, 226; his canonization desired by Henry VII., 207; innocency, 220; pro- gnostication concerning Henry VII., 220, 297, 298 Henry VII., King of England, attainted by Edward IV., 46, 249; resides in Brittany during the reigns of Edward IV. and Richard III., 252 ; plot formed for his apprehension, 252; takes refuge with Charles VIIL, ib.^ causes "Te Deum" to be sung on Bosworth Field, 5; receives assistance from Charles VIIL and the Duke of Brittany at Bosworth, 46, 249; saluted King, ib.\ table showing his connection with the House of Lancaster, 224; takes an oath to marry Elizabeth of York, 228; titles to the crown, 7-9; that on which he rests his claim, 9; the crown, worn by Richard at Bosworth Field, placed upon him by Sir W. Stanley, 8; proceeds towards London, 10 ; reception on the route, 10, II ; his orders con- cerning the march, 1 1 ; entry and reception, ib.\ goes to St Paul's, ib.\ "Te Deum" again sung, ib.\ stays at the Bishop's Palace, ib. ; artificial design of marriage with Anne, Duchess of Brittany, 11, 12; his reasons for this, 12; proceeds to the Tower, where he makes twelve knights bannerets, 13; corona- tion, 12, 13; the Act concern- ing the entailing of the crown upon him and his heirs, 15, 233, 234; his attainder defaced, 16; parliaments, 12, 14, 15, 51, 52-59, 89-91, 132, 147; insti- tutes the Yeomen of the Guard, 14; general pardons, 17, 21; requests a loan of 6000 marks from the Lord Mayor, 18; mar- riage with Elizabeth of York, 19, 238, 239; his treatment of the Queen, 19, 22, 239; pro- posal to visit the Northern Counties, 20; spends Easter at Lincoln, 20; arrival at York, ib. ; sends an army against Lord Lovel, ib.', returns to London from the North, 21; ill-feeling INDEX. 327 towards the House of York, 22; rumoured intention of putting Edward Plantagenet to death, ib. ; neglect of Irish matters, 26 ; anxiety at Simnel's favourable reception in Ireland, 27; holds a council at Shene, ib. ; makes pilgrimage to Walsingham, 34 ; arrival at Bury St Edmunds, and Norwich, ib. ; realizes the danger of the rebellion in Ire- land, ib.\ levies his forces for opposing the rebels, 35; arrives at Coventry, ib. ; holds council of war at Nottingham, 36; re- solves on a speedy battle, ib.\ opposes the Earl of Lincoln at Stoke, 36, 37 ; victory there, 37 ; spares Simnel's life, 38; orders thanksgiving at Lincoln for the victory, ib. ; proceeds to the Northern Counties and punishes the adherents of the rebels en route, 39; goes to the Queen's Coronation, ib.-, enters London in state, 39, 40; celebrates the victory of Stoke at St Paul's, 40; sends to Pope Innocent signifying his marriage, ib. ; am- bassage to James III. King of Scotland to conclude a peace, 41; receives ambassadors from Charles VIII. concerning the latter's desire to obtain the Duchy of Britain, 43 ; guarded reply to the ambassage, 45, 46; offers himself as mediator, 46, 54; promises to send ambas- sadors to Charles, 46; perceives the latter's intention in acquiring Britain, but is unwilling to enter into war with France, ib. ; re- solves on war in preference to Charles's obtaining the Duchy, 47 ; maintains that Lord Wod- vile went without his know- ledge to the assistance of the Duke of Britain, 50, 51 ; thinks to strengthen himself by the alliance of Ferdinand and Maxi- milian, 52 ; his own views con- cerning the King of France and the Duchy of Britain, 51, 52; sends fresh ambassadors to Charles, 60; sends the Earl of Surrey to quell the fresh rebel- lion in the North, 66; follows the Earl, 67; his march, 67, 259; wisdom as a lawgiver, 69, 74; loan of ^^4000 from the City, 74, 263 ; his designs and cares concerning Britain, 74, 263; sends an army to aid Maximilian in Flanders, 76; urges him to press on his mar- riage with Anne, Duchess of Brittany, 77; hatred of Charles towards Henry after the fighting in Flanders, 77 ; receives the Commissioners of Charles, 79 ; his reply to them, 85, 86; his title to France, 86; sends am- bassadors to Charles, 87 ; their return, 88; determines on war with France, 89; secretly does not desire the war, ^\ ; his tact in deciding either for war or peace, 92; removes the Bene- volence tax, 93; preparations for the war with France, 94; looks after the affairs of Maxi- milian for the quieting of Flan- ders, ib.; besieges Sluice, 95; at Boulogne, 96; orders Thanks- giving in St Paul's for the con- quest of Granada, 97, 98; keeps May-Day at Shene, 98 ; arranges his forces for the invasion of France, 99; leaves Greenwich for the invasion, 100; embarks at Sandwich, loi ; at Calais, 100, 103; march to Boulogne, ro2 ; agrees to treat with Charles for peace, ib. ; peace concluded, ib. ; the sum to be paid to Henry, 102, 270; spends Christmas at Westminster, 103 ; writes to the Lord Mayor concerning the 328 INDEX. peace, ih.\ endeavours to prove that the Duke of York was mur- dered, 114; sends spies into Flanders about Warbeck, 115, ir6; sends ambassage to the Archduke PhiHp for the dis- missal of Warbeck, 116; its delivery, 117-119; banishes all Flemmings and forbids com- merce with them, 119, 274; re- moves from Westminster to the Tower, 121 ; libels against him, 126; visits his mother at Latham, 128; the blot of his times... for- feitures upon penal laws, ib.\ reputation for cunning, 129; proceeds Northwards, 129, 130; hangs all the rebels taken in Kent, 130; present with the Queen at the Serjeants' feast in Ely Place, 131 ; joins the Italian league against Charles VII 1., 131, 132; treaty with the Arch- duke Philip, 146, 282; subsidy granted to, for the war with Scotland, 147; perple.xities re- garding this war, the Cornish rebellion, and Warbeck, 151; resolves to attack the Cornish rebels at Blackheath, 152; en- camps in St George's Fields, 1 53 ; bannerets created after the victory at Blackheath, 155; variety and inequality of his pardons and executions, 156; demands the delivery of War- beck as a condition of peace with Scotland, 160; truce ar- ranged, 161, 285; receives conse- crated sword and cap from Pope Alexander, 162, 285; ceremony at St Paul's in connexion with this, 162; rejoices to hear that Warbeck is on English ground, 165, 166; despatches a force to Exeter, 166; his entry there, 168, 169, 286; promises War- beck pardon on condition of surrender, 169; appoints com- missioners for fining the rebels, 169; their severity, ib.'y peace with Scotland, 175, 287; ru- mours that he connived at the escape of Warbeck, 176; execu- tion of the Earl of Warwick, 178, 179; lays the blame for this on Ferdinand, 179; at Calais with the Queen, 180; meets the Archduke Philip, 180, 181; conferences with him upon cross marriages, 180, 181 ; said to have shared in the money collected by Pope Alexander's commissioner in England, 183; this denied by Cardinal Adrian, 183, 290; urged by Pope Julius to engage in a holy war against the Turks, 183, 184; his answer to the Pope, 184, 185; elected by the Knights of Rhodes pro- tector of their Order, 185; pro- sperous condition of his affairs, 1 90 ; gives himself up to avarice, 190-193; cogitations after the death of Queen Isabella, 198, 199; contemplates a marriage with the widowed Queen of Naples, 199; but abandons the idea, 199, 200; sends the same commission to the Court of Ferdinand about the govern- ment of Castile, Queen Isabella being now dead, ?^. ; resolves to maintain friendship both with Ferdinand and Philip, 202 ; Philip visits him at Windsor, 203-205 ; presses him to deliver up the Earl of Suffolk, 204; asks Pope Julius to canonize Henry VI., 207 ; urged by Maxi- milian to claim the government of Castile, 298; treaty of mar- riage with the Lady Margaret, Dowager Duchess of Savoy, 207, 295 ; the marriage postponed on account of his health, 208, 209; thoughts of his possibly ap- proaching end cause him to INDEX. 329 give himself up to works of charity, 209; touched with re- morse at the doings of Empson and Dudley, ib.\ pays for the canonization of Anselm, 298 ; his delight at the marriage treaty of his daughter Mary with Prince Charles, 210; death, 211, 298; burial, 221, 299; general remarks upon, 21 1-22 1 ; his wealth at his death, 210; a great almsgiver in secret, 212; general successes of his arms, ib. ; his reverence for his mother, 215; affection for his children, 217; favourably compared with Lewis XII., 220 Henry VIII., King of England, birth, 88 ; created Duke of York, &c. , 121 ; proposed mar- riage for him with the daughter of the Archduke Philip, 180, 181 ; created Prince of Wales, 188, 29 1 ; contracted in marriage to the Princess Catharine, 188 ; Pope Julius urged to expedite the bull of dispensation for his marriage, 183 Henry, Prince, eldest son of James I., death, 223 Henningham Castle, The Earl of Oxford entertains Henry VII. at, 192, 292, 293 Heralds, proclamation of pardon by, 21, 240 Heretics, proceedings against, 185 Heme, one of Warbeck's Council, 163, 178, 289 Hialas, Peter, sent to England by Ferdinand and Isabella con- cerning the marriage of Catha- rine of Arragon with Prince Arthur, 158; 284 ; proceeds to Scotland to treat for peace be- tween James IV. and Henry, 159, 160 Hill, Thomas, Mayor of London, 231 ; dies from the sweating sickness, 232 Hobart, James, mentioned by Warbeck as being in favour with the king, 142 ; member of a commission to enquire into the extent of the English pos- sessions in France, 281 Holt, inventory of the money found at, 275 Holy Roman Empire, 233 Hungarians, the, urged by Pope Julius to make war upon Thra- cia, 184 Husbandry, act against the decay of, 71, 261 Hussey, Sir William, Chief Justice of the King's Bench, 299 Hydra's teeth, 72, 262 Imola, Bp. of, legate of Pope In- nocent VIII., 247 Inclosures, statute concerning, 70- 72, 261 India, passage to, by sea, 287 Indian emblem, ancient, 152, 283 Indulgences, sale of, 290 Infantry, value of, in an army, 72 — French, 90 Innocent VII I. , Pope, bull of, confirming the entailing of the Crown on Henry VII., 15 ; grants dispensation for Henry's marriage, 246, 247 ; Henry sends an ambassador to, signifying his marriage, 40 ; bull qualifying the privileges of Sanctuary, 41 ; Ferdinand acknowledges his help in the conquest of Granada, 97; the depravity of his Pontifi- cate, 247 ; permits all banished subjects to return to Rome, ib. ; the consequences of this, ib. ; causes Gemes to be delivered to him at Rome, 265 ; Innocent's letter to Henry VII., 303 Ireland, affection of, towards the House of York, 26, 244 ; state of, on the arrival of the counter- feit Plantagenet, ib. ; the parad- ing of the real Plantagenet 33^ INDEX. through the streets of London produces no effect upon, 30 ; the rebels win the Earl of Lin- coln over to their side, ib.; parts only of Ireland subject to Eng- lish law at the beginning of the reign of Henry VII. , 244 Isabella, Queen of Spain, death of, 195? I97» 198, 294. See also under Ferdinand and Isabella Italy, Italian league against Charles VIII., 131, 132, 278; receipts from Italian goods brought to England to be expended in Eng- lish products, 18, 235; fines for non-compliance, 235 ; much people but few soldiers in, 72 ; the States maintain the balance of power in, 253 James L, King of England, his learning, 224; remits Bacon's sentence, ib. James III., King of Scotland, sends deputation to assist at Henry's coronation, 248; Henry sends an ambassage to, for con- cluding a peace, 41 ; his par- tiality towards England, 91, 139, 247, 248; rebellion of his subjects, 67 ; death, 68, 259 James IV., King of Scotland, falls into the power of the rebels, 67, 259 ; devotion to France, and hatred of England, 91 ; War- beck advised to seek the assist- ance of, 135, 136; receives Warbeck favourably, 136 ; re- ply to Warbeck's declaration, 139 ; embraces the latter 's cause, 140 ; enters Northumberland, ib. ; consents to the marriage of Warbeck with Lady Catharine Gordon, ib. ; lays waste Nor- thumberland, 145 ; returns to Scotland with his spoils, ib. ; besieges Norham Castle, 157 ; fails and betakes himself to his own country, 157, 158; refuses to hand Warbeck over to Henry, 160; begins to suspect the for- mer as a counterfeit, 161 ; truce with Henry, 161, 285 ; protests against the treatment of the Scotch at Norham Castle, 173 ; asks Bishop Fox's good offices in obtaining the hand of the Lady Margaret, Henry's daugh- ter, 174; peace with England, 175, 287 ; married to the Lady Margaret at St Paul's, 188, 189; killed at Flodden Field, 280 Jane, daughter of Lewis XL the first wife of Lewis XII., 255 Jedburgh, the commissioners of Henry VII. and James IV. meet at, 284, 285 Joan, Queen of Castile, grief at the death of her husband, the Archduke Philip, 206, 207 Joan, widow of Ferdinand I., King of Naples, Henry's thoughts of marriage with her, 199, 200, 295 John, King of Aragon, mortgages Russignon and Perpignian to the French, 10 1 John, King of France, a prisoner in England, 90, 267 John II., King of Portugal, and the passage to India by sea, 172, 287 Joseph, Michael, a ringleader in the Cornish rebellion, 148 ; hanged at Tyburn, 156 Jubilee, year of, 290 Julius, Pope, and the Bull for the dispensation with regard to the marriage between Prince Henry and the Lady Catharine, 183 ; urged Henry VII. to proceed against the Turks, 183, 184 ; ex- communicates the Earl of Suf- folk and Sir R. Curson, 194 ; asked to canonize Henry VI., 201, 297 Juno, the name given to the Lady Margaretof Burgundy by Henry's friends, 104 INDEX. ZTy-^ Justices of the Peace, Statute con- cerning, 73, 262 Kemp, Thomas, Bp of London, 232 Kendal, Sir John, Prior of St John's, a commissioner concern- ing the removal of intercourse between England and Flanders, 146, 282 Kent, George Earl of, in the army drawn up for the invasion of France, 100 ; his influence in Kent, 150 ; takes an active part in the suppression of the Cornish rebellion, 269 Kent, men of, decide against War- beck, 129; they encourage his adherents to land, and then de- feat them, 130 ; the Cornish rebels are led into, 150 ; arrival of the counterfeit Earl of War- wick in, 177 Kildare, Gerald Earl of, Deputy of Ireland, Warbeck asks his assistance, 109 ; ordered to sub- mit to Sir E. Poynings, 127; apprehended by him, ib. ; clears himself and is reinstated in his government, ib. ; attainted, 277 ; the attainder reversed, ib. Kildare, Thomas Earl of, espouses the cause of Simnel, 26 ; lands with the rebel forces at Fouldrey, 35 ; slain at the battle of Stoke, 37 Kilkenny, supremacy of the Butlers in, 244 King, A, by Act of Parliament, 228 King of rake-hells, the name given by Henry to Warbeck, 165 King, Oliver, mentioned by War- beck as being in favour with Henry, 142, 281 ; one of the commissioners appointed to meet those of Charles VHI., 281 ; ordered to take possession of Calais, Rysebank, &c., ib. King's Bench, court of, 62, 256 King's Council, conspiracy against the, esteemed a capital offence, 62 Kneesworth, Thomas, Mayor of London, &c. fined, 210 Knights bannerets, 13, 232 Knox, John, and the rule of the three Marys, 225 Koran, The, 83, 266 Lancaster, Condemnation of the title of the House of, 228; the supporters of the title to be ad- judged guilty of treason, ib. Lancastrian line, The plea brought forward on behalf of the, 228; line of descent shown, ib. Landois, the Breton minister, fur- nishes Richard HL with in- formation concerning Henry and his followers, 252 Languedoc, regulations concern- ing the importation of wines from, 72 Latimer, Hugh, Bp. of Worcester, Sermons preached before Ed- ward VL at St Paul's Cross by, 246 Layborne, Robert, arrested, 274 Lease or Grant, statute concerning the patent of, 195 Leicester, Richard HI. buried in the Church of the Grey Friars at, 225 ; Henry VH. in, 43 Leinster and Munster, supremacy of the Fitzgeralds in, 244 Leo X., Pope, election of, 260; conspiracy against the life of, 68, 69 ; sale of Indulgences by, 183, 290 Lessey, Sir Richard, arrested, 274 Lewis XL, King of France, Treaty of peace with Edward IV., 6, 227 ; sends forces to seize Bur- gundy and the Franche-Comte, 253 ; recognized as sovereign of Burgundy, ib. Lewis XIL, King of France, sends 332 INDEX, the governor of Picardy and the bailiff of Amiens to honour Henry at Calais, i8i ; lays claim to the Duchy of Milan, 290. See also under Orleans, Duke of Lincoln, Henry VII. at, 20 ; thanksgiving there for the vic- tory at Stoke, 38 Lincoln, John, Earl of, declares for the counterfeit Plantagenet and the Irish rebels, 30; Richard III. failing issue resolves upon making him king, 30, 31 ; sails secretly into Flanders, 31 ; settles means of communication with Sir T. Broughton, ib. ; arrangements for his passing over to Ireland with a regiment, 32 ; lands at Fouldrey with the rebel forces, 35 ; decides to give battle to Henry, and marches towards Newark, 36 ; encamps at Stoke, 36 ; slain at the battle there, 37 ; genealogy, 245 Lily, John, bishop of Rome's col- lector, 250 Liveries, igi, 292 London, the army of, for the in- vasion of France, 100 ; meeting of commissioners at, for the re- newal of commerce between England and Flanders, 146 ; tumult there on the approach of the Cornish rebels, 153 ; the in- habitants gain confidence, 154 ; plague in, 179 Long Roger, one of Warbeck's keepers in the Tower, 1 76 Lovel, Francis Lord, attainder, 17, 234; an annuity from his forfeited lands granted to Sir J. Egremond, 259 ; raises rebellion against Henry, 20; flight, 21 ; arrives in Flanders, 31 ; to cross over to Ireland with a regiment, 32 ; slain at the battle of Stoke, 37 ; rumours concerning him, ib. ; rhyme made in Richard's reign concerning him, Ratcliffe and Catesby, 234 ; particulars concerning his share in the re- bellion, 239 ; creation of the title, 234 Lovel, Thomas, speaker of the House of Commons, mentioned by Warbeck as being in favour with Henry, 142, 281 Lovell, Sir Robert, appointed re- ceiver of the property of Edmond Earl of Suffolk, 293 Ludlow Castle, death of Prince Arthur at, 188, 291 Luxemburg, Francis, Lord of, one of the ambassadors sent by Charles VIII. to Henry, 78 Lytton, Robert, in favour with Henry, 281 Margaret, Lady, mother of Henry VII., parentage, 224, 225; piety, 8 ; her name perpetuated at the Universities, 225 ; visited by the King, 128; Henry's rever- ence for her, 215 ; her dream concerning her future husband, Henry VI., 220; given in mar- riage at the age of nine to John de la Pole, afterwards Earl of Suffolk, 225; this becomes void, ib. ; her three marriages, ib. ; a benefactress to various religious houses, 225; death, ib. Margaret, Lady, Duchess of Bur- gundy, succours the Earl of Lin- coln, 31 ; secret messages sent to her concerning events in Ire- land, 31, 32 ; the second wife of Charles the Hardy, 32 ; hatred of the House of Lancaster and designs against Henry VII., ib,\ arranges with Lincoln and Lovel for the despatch of forces to Ire- land, ib.\ Sir John Egremont's flit^ht to, after the defeat of the rebels in the North, 66 ; called Juno by the king's friends, 104; her part concerning Warbeck, the pretended Duke of York, INDEX. 333 104-108; orders Warbeck to proceed to Portugal and after- wards to Ireland, 108 ; gets Stephen Frion into her service, 109 ; Warbeck betakes himself to, 1 10, m ; her reception of him, 11 1, 112; introduces Sir Robert Clifford to him, 113; secret flight of the Earl of Suffolk to, 186 ; her possessions, 274 Margaret, daughter of Henry ViL, solicited in marriage by James IV., King of Scotland, 174; her marriage to him, 188, 189; marriage portion and settle- ment, 189 Margaret, daughter of Maximilian, educated by the Lady Margaret of Burgundy, 32, 245 ; resides at the Court of France and looked upon as the future wife of Charles, 248 ; returns to her father, ib. Margaret of Savoy, treaty of mar- riage with Henry VII., 295 Marignian, Charles, one of the am- bassadors sent by Charles VIII. to Henry to treat for peace, 78, 263 Marriage by proxy, 77, 263 Marsin, Francis, sent by Henry to enquire concerning the Queen of Naples, and afterwards to the Court of Ferdinand, 199 ; em- ployed in the communications between Lewis XII. and Henry, 295 ; present at the interview in 1500 between Henry and the Archduke Philip, ib. Mary, Queen of England, govern- ment of, assailed by John Knox, 225 Mary, Queen of Scots, govern- ment of, assailed by John Knox, 225 Mary of Guise, government of, assailed by John Knox, 225 Mary, daughter of Henry VII., treaty of marriage with Charles, Prince of Castile, 210; the third wife of Lewis XII., 255 Matha, John de, one of the foun- ders of the religious order called Bons-Hommesof the Trinity, 264 Matthias, King of Hungary, anxious to obtain possession of Gemes, brother of Bajazet II., emperor of the Turks, 265 Maximilian, King of the Romans, afterwards Emperor of Ger- many, accession and coronation, 233 ; covets the Duchy of Brit- tany, 43, 47 ; Henry hopes for his alliance, 52 ; encouraged by Henry to proceed with his suit for the hand of the Duchess of Britain, 74, 77 ; the marriage performed by proxy, ib. ; re- bellion of his subjects in Flan- ders, 74, 75 ; taken prisoner at Bruges, 75 ; procrastination of, 77 ; his rage against Charles after the latter's marriage to the Duchess of Britain, 88, 89 ; sends ambassadors to England and Spain concerning war with France, 89 ; various attempts to obtain the town of Dam, 94 ; Henry endeavours to restore him to his authority, ib.\ totally un- prepared for the invasion of France, 99 ; Henry's ambassage to him, 10 1 ; a party to the Italian league against France, 132, 278; recommends War- beck to the King of Scotland, 136; his marriages, 245, 253; urges Henry to claim the govern- ment of Castile, 298 May tournaments at Shene, 98 Melrose Abbey, meeting between the Scottish King and Bishop Fox at, 174, 287 Milan, winning of the Duchy of, by Lewis XII., 181, 290; entry of the French into, 290 Milan, Duke of, see under Sfortia, Ludovico 334 INDEX. Mint, laws for the correction of the, 73 Modon occupied by the Turks, 290 Montpensier, Count of, appointed Viceroy of Naples by Charles VIIL, 278 Moors, power of the, in Spain, ^3> 265 ; war by the King of Spain for the recovery of Granada from the, 83 ; final conquest of Granada from the, 97 ; the slaves of the Moors sing a Psalm (Benedictus) for their redemp- tion after the conquest, ib.; their religious observances at the rais- ing of the cross after the con- quest, 269 More, Sir T., on the decay caused by turning arable land into pas- ture, 261 ; belief in Elizabeth Barton, the Maid of Kent, the cause of his fall, 276 Morley, Henry Lovell, Lord, slain in the battle at Dixmude, 76, 263 Morton, Cardinal, his prefei-ments, 19, 237, 238, 257, 269; espouses the cause of the Lancastrians, 237; submits on their defeat at Tewkesbury, 237, 238; advanced by Edward IV. , ib. ; arrested by Richard IIL, ib. ; flight into Flanders, ib. ; escapes from Brecknock, 238 ; his attainder re- versed, ib. ; the dilemma termed Morton's fork, 93, 238 ; called into the Privy Council of Henry, 18, 19 ; delivers the King's speech at the opening of his second Parliament, 53-59 ; his argument for the levying of the Benevolence Tax, 93 ; declara- tion in St Paul's concerning the conquest of Granada, 98 ; de- signs of the Cornish rebels against him, 149, 150; Henry's avarice imputed to, 214; death, 182, 237 ; character, 182 Mort-pays, statute concerning, 93, 268 Mountfort, Sir Simon, steward of Castle Bromwich, 273 ; sides with the counterfeit Duke of York, 113; apprehended and beheaded, 120 Murder, statute concerning the re- pressing of, 63, 64, 258 Nantes, siege of, 49, 53, 250 Naples, the intention of Charles VHL to recover, 45 ; the grounds on which he rests his claim to that kingdom, 249, 264 ; he determines upon M'ar upon, 82, 86 ; his conquest and subsequent loss of, 131, 132 ; the King of Naples a vassal of the Pope, 279 Nevile, Sir George, his petition to the King, 272 ; joins Warbeck's party, no Newfoundland, discovery of, 286 Newport, spoils taken to, after the battle at Dixmude, 76 ; be- sieged, ib. ; the siege raised, 77 New Romney, extract from the Corporation Records of, con- cerning the watching of beacons, 280 Non-claim, statute of, 70, 261 Norfolk, John Duke of, attainted, 16, 234 Norfolk, Thomas Duke of, marries Anne, daughter of Edward IV., 280 Norfolk, Dukes of, forfeiture and restoration of the title, 234 Norham Castle besieged by James IV., King of Scotland, 157 ; skirmish between the English and Scotch at, 173 Normandy, Henry's claim to, 86 Northern Counties, visit of the King to the, 20, 39 ; their devo- tion to the Yorkists, 20 Northern subsidy riot, 65, dd Northumberland, Henry, 4th Earl INDEX. 335 ot, deserts Richard III. at Bos- worth, 258 ; appealed to con- cerning the Northern subsidy, 65 ; his reply, 65, ()(t ; is killed by the rioters, 66 Northumberland, Henry, 5th Earl of, conveys the Lady Margaret, daughter of Henry, to her hus- band the King of Scotland, 189, 292 ; commands at Blackheath, 292 Northumberland, arrival of the King of Scots and Warbeck in, 140; the latter's proclamation, 140-144 ; the Northumbrians are not influenced by it, 145 ; laid waste by James IV., 145, 282 Norwich, Henry VII. at, 34 Nottingham, council of war held by Henry at, ^d O'Briens, supremacy of the, in Co. Clare, 244 O'Donnells, power of the, in the North of Ireland, 244 O'Neils, influence of the, in the North of Ireland, 244 Orange, Prince of, taken prisoner at the battle of St Alban, 60, 253 Orleans, Duke of, afterwards Lewis XII., his party in France, 47 ; the Duke of Brittany under the influence of, 48 ; reply to Henry's ambassage, 48, 49 ; alleged as- sistance rendered to, by the Duke of Brittany, 53 ; taken prisoner at the battle of St Alban, 60, 254 ; his wife pleads for and obtains his pardon, 255; kept a prisoner at Bruges, ib. ; divorced from his wife on his accession, ib. ; a suitor for the hand of Anne, Duchess of Britain, 248 ; eventually marries her, 255 Ormond, Thomas Earl of, an am- bassador to the King of France, 87, 88, 266 ; in the army for the French invasion, 100 ; created Baron Rochford, 270 Orsini faction, 247 Osbeck, John, the father of Perkin Warbeck, 106, 271 Ostia, siege of, by Charles VI I L, 131; recovered for the Pope by Gonsalvo de Aguilar, 279 Ottoman Empire, Charles VIII. intends the overthrow of, 82; divisions in the, 8.^ Ottomans, origin of the name, 264 Owen, David, mentioned by War- beck as being in favour with Henry, 142; chief carver to the King, 281 Oxford, mortality in, owing to the Sweating sickness, 232 Oxford, John Earl of, attainder and restoration of, 245 ; made Admiral, ib.\ a commander in the army against Simnel's ad- herents, 34, 35 ; general of the forces for the French invasions, 100; leads the army opposed to the Cornish rebels, 152-154; arraigns the Earl of Warwick, 178; entertains Henry at Hen- ningham Castle, 192, 292, 293; fined on account of his retainers, 192 Palestine, Henry IV. intends making an expedition into, 182, 183 Pardons, general, 14, 17, 28, 30, 156, 167, 211, 298 Parker, Sir James, and Henry Vaughan run courses at Shene, 99; Parker is accidentally killed, ib. Parliaments, 12, 14, 18, 52, 53, 59, 89, 92, 94, 132, 147, 195 ; Poy- ning's, 127 Patrick, an Augustin Friar, in- stigates Ralph Wilford to per- sonate the Earl of Warwick, 33^ INDEX, 177; condemned to perpetual imprisonment, ib. Pembroke, Jasper Earl of, Henry VII. born at the castle of, 233; made Duke of Bedford, 13 Perin, provost of, slain by the Cornish rebels at Taunton, 149, 283 Perkin, the termination kin, 271 Perpignian, Ferdinand in treaty with Charles VIII. for the re- storation of, 91; the restoration effected, loi Peterborough monastery, The Lady Margaret a benefactress to, 225 Petrucci, Alphonso, Cardinal, in- llueatial in the election of Pope Leo X., 260 Philip, The Archduke, King of Castile, educated by Lady Mar- garet, Duchess of Burgundy, 32, 245; Henry sends an ambas- sage to, for the dismissal of Warbeck from Flanders, 116, 117; his reply to the ambas- sadors, 119; secretly furthers the cause of Warbeck, ib.\ banishes the English from Flan- ders, 120; treaty of peace with Henry, 146, 282 ; Earl of Suffolk retires into Flanders for the pro- tection of, 195; the Spaniards better affected to him than to Ferdinand, 201 ; the cause of this, ib.\ sails with a large navy from Flanders into Spain, 202; it is scattered on the coast of England, ib. ; visits Henry at Windsor, 203-205; description of hisunintended visit to England from Grafton's Chronicle, 296, 297; offers to deliver up the Earl of Suffolk to Henry, 204; receives the Oi'der of the Garter from Henry, 205 ; arrives in Spain and obtains undisputed possessionof Castile, 206; death, 206, 297 Philip the Good, Duke of Bur- gundy, the Order of the Golden Fleece instituted by, 297 Picardy, Louis XI. sends forces to occupy, 253 Picquigny, treaty of, 6, 227 Pisa, Charles VIII. protects the liberty of, 131 Plantagenet, the counterfeit, see under Simnel Plantagenets, end of the male line of the, 179; where to find names of families that can trace their origin from the, 289 Pluto better than Pallas, applied to Ferdinand of Spain, 201, 295; further note on, 304 Poictiers, battle of, 90 Pole, Sir Richard, marries Mar- garet Countess of Salisbury, 281 ; made Knight of the Garter and chamberlain to Prince Arthur, ib. Pole, Richard de la, brother of the Earl of Suffolk, flight into Flanders, 293 ; slain at Pavia, ib. Pole, William de la, brother of the Earl of Suffolk, arrested, 194. 293 Polonians urged by Pope Julius to make war upon Thracia, 184 Pons, Jasper, Pope Alexander's commissioner to England in the year of Jubilee at Rome, 183, 290; returns to the Pope with Henry's answer, 185 Pontefract castle given up to the rebels, 286 Poor suitors, statute concerning, 135, 280 Portugal, Warbeck sent by the Duchess of Burgundy to, 108 Poynes, Sir Thomas, friar of the Order of St Dominic, arrested, 274 Poynings, Sir Edward, treats with the people of Bruges for their submission to Maximilian, INDEX. 337 96 ; returns from Sluice to Henry at Boulogne, ib. ; one of Henry's ambassadors to the Archduke Philip, 116, 117; made Lord Deputy of Ireland, 127, 268; has the Earl of Kildai-e appre- hended, ib.\ summons a parlia- ment, ?/^.; Poynings' Law, 253, 268, 277 Procedures, statute concerning, 64, 258 Protection, act in favour of, for those in the King's service, 93 Puebla, Rodrigo de la, Corre- spondence with Ferdinand, 295 ; Master of Sherborne Hospital, ib. Ratcliffe, John, apprehension and subsequent pardon, 120 Ratcliffe, Richard, knight of the body to Richard III., 234; opposes the design of Richard III. to marry Elizabeth of York, 226; attainted, 17 Ratcliffe, Robert, apprehension and execution of, 120 Ravenstein, Lord, places himself at the head of the rebels in Flanders, 75, 263; seizes Ypres and Sluice, 75; sends to the French King for assistance, ib. ; an army from France sent to his aid, ib.; takes the town and castle of Sluice, 94; robs vessels on their way to the mart of Antwerp, &c., ib.\ yields the castle of Sluice to the English, 96 Re-coinage, 197 Redemption of captives, religious order of the, 264 Retainers, laws concerning, 64, 197, 258; fines inflicted by Henry under it, 293 Rhodes, knights of, 291 ; Henry elected protector of their Order, .185 Richard III., King of England, B. H. his anxiety concerning Henry's partizans in Brittany, 252 ; the various crimes of which he was the alleged instigator, 6, 226; his thanks to Tirrel when ap- prised of the murder of the Princes, 114; attainder, 16; rumour that he wished to marry Elizabeth of York, 226; mar- ries Anne, daughter of the Earl of Warwick, ib. ; his disputes with the Duke of Clarence re- garding the disposal of the wealth of the Earl of Warwick, ib. ; crowned a second time at York, 239 ; design for securing the crown to John Earl of Lincoln in default of his own issue, 30, 3 r ; abolishes the Benevolence tax, 93, 268; death at Bosworth Field, 5; burial, 5, 6, 225 ; tomb erected over his grave by Henry VII., 225; his acknowledged bravery, 226 ; good laws made by him, ib. ; his memory cherished in the Northern districts, 65; genea- logical table at the death of, 229, 230; the author's asper- sions on his character, 6; loans asked for by him instead of be- nevolences, 301 Richard, Duke of York, murder of, 6; design by Richard Simon for a counterfeit representation of, 23, 25; declared by the Duchess of Burgundy not to have been murdered in the Tower, 105; said to be still living, 112; the belief of the people in his existence, ib. ; per- sonation of, see Warbeck Richeforde, Sir William, arrested, .274 Richmond palace, building of, 171; the King's wealth de- posited by him in secret places there, 210; death of Henry at, 211 22 338 INDEX. Riot, statutes against, 197 Riseley, Sir John, one of Henry's trusted servants, 269; mentioned by Warbeck as being in favour with the King, \jfi\ sent by Henry to Maximilian to inform him tliat his forces were in readiness for the French in- vasion, 99; a commissioner con- cerning the renewal of inter- course with Flanders, 146 Roderick, the last Gothic King in Spain, overcome by the Moors, 265 Romans, King of the, the title of the heir apparent to the empire of Germany, 233 Rome, year of Jubilee at, 183 Roussillon, Ferdinand of Spain in treaty with Charles VI I i. for the restoration of, 91, 267; the restoration, loi Rutland, Edmund Earl of, mur- dered after battle of Wakefield, 279 St Alban, battle of, 60, 227, 254 St George's fields, Henry en- camps in, 153, 284 St John, Thomas Poynings Lord, one of the King's ambassadors to the Archduke Philip, 180 St Paul's Cathedral, golden eagle blown down from the spire of, 206 St Paul's palace, 162 Saint, John, abbot of Abingdon, one of the Commissioners sent by Henry to the French King, 50; procures a delay in the execution of Humphrey and William Stafford, 240 Salisbury, the Cornish rebels at, 150 Salisbury, Margaret Countess of, married to Sir Richard Pole, 281 ; beheaded, ib. Sanctuary, rules concerning, 41, 247 Sandwich, Henry embarks at, 10 r; Warbeck arrives upon the coast of, 129 Saturday regarded as a lucky day by Henry, 11, 231 Savage, Sir John, joins the army of the Duke of Richmond, 229; killed during the siege of Bou- logne, 102, 270 Savoy, hospital of the, 209, 212, 298 Savoy, Margaret Duchess Dowager of, betrothed to Charles VHL, 298; marriage with the Duke, ib.', treaty of marriage with Henry VIL, 207 Saxony, Duke of, arrives in Flan- ders to settle matters between Maximilian and his subjects, 94, 268; enters Bruges, 94; the means by which he took the town of Dam, 95 ; treats with the people of Bruges for their surrender to Maximilian, 96 ; they submit, ib. Scotland, union of, with England, 223; rebellion in, against James III., 67; the Scotch expelled from England, 93, 268; raid into the North of England by the, 275 Segovia, English ambassadors at, ??5 Seisins, Premier, 191, 292 Seneca's prophecy, 172, 286 Serjeants' Feasts, 131, 197, 277, 278, 294 Sfortia, Ludovico, Duke of Milan, encourages Charles VIII. in his claim on Naples, 278; differ- ences between them, 131, 132; a party to the Italian league against Charles, 132; the de- viser of this alliance, 278; usurps the government of Milan from his nephew, ib.\ Charles negotiates a peace with, 279; flight to Maximilian at the entry of the French into Milan, 290 INDEX. 339 Shaw, Dr., Sermon at Paul's Cross, in which he asserts that the children of Edward IV. and Lady Grey are illegitimate, lo, 231 Shaw, John, Sheriff of .London, arms the citizens against the Cornish rebels, 153; knighted, 284 Shene, council at, 27, 28, 244 ; May tournaments at, 98; fire at, 171, 286 Shene, priory of, Warbeck takes refuge in the, 175; the Prior intercedes with the King for Warbeck's life, ib. Sheriff Hutton, Elizabeth of York conveyed from the Castle of, to London, 9, 10 Shoreditch, reception of Henry VIL at, n Shoring act, 134, 279, 280 Shrewsbury, George Earl of, goes to Henry's assistance against Simnel and the rebels, 36, 246, 269; in the army for the in- vasion of France, 100 Simnel, Lambert, the counterfeit Plantagenet, sails with Simon into Ireland, 26 ; arrival there, ib.', believed by the Earl of Kildare to be the true Plan- tagenet, ib.\ reception by the Irish, 26, 27; taken to Dublin Castle, 27; proclaimed King, ib.\ crowned, ib.\ lands with the rebel forces at Fouldrey, 35; taken prisoner at the battle of Stoke, 37 ; placed in service in the King's kitchen, 38; com- pared with Warbeck, 104-106, III, 118 Silk, statute concerning the im- portation of, 195, 196, 294 Silver, statute concerning the calling in of clipped, 196, 294 Simon, Richard, the design of the counterfeit Plantagenet invented by, 23-26; taken prisoner at Stoke, 37, 38; confined, 25 Simonds, William, alias Richard Simon, 23 note Sion, Sir William Stanley buried at, 276 Skelton, one of Warbeck's council, 163, 178, 289 Sluice and its castle taken by Lord Ravenstein, 75, 94; be- sieged, 95, 96; yielded up to the English, 96 Smerdis, the usurper, 241 Smith, William, mentioned by Warbeck as being in favour with the King, 142 ; keeper of the hanaper of the Chancery, 281 Soldiers, statute concerning the departure of, without leave, 93 Somerset, Sir Charles, Captain of the King's Guard, 281 Somerset, John Earl of, a natural son of John of Gaunt, 224 Spain, a probable ally of England against France, 90; urged by Pope Julius to make war upon Grsecia, 184; better affected towards Philip King of Castile than to Ferdinand, 201; Castile and Spain united on the marriage of Ferdinand and Isabella, 233 Spalding monastery, Lady Mar- garet, mother of Henry VIL a benefactor to, 225 Stafford, Edward, restoration of, 18 Stafford, Lord Henry, the second husband of the Lady Margaret, mother of Henry VIL, 225 Stafford, Humphrey, attainder, 240 ; his children deprived of their property on account of this, ib.; takes sanctuary at Colchester, 20; in rebellion against the King, ib. ; takes sanctuary at Colnham, 21; exe- cuted, ib. Stafford, Humphrey and Thomas 22- 340 INDEX. conveyed to Worcester for exe- cution, 240; the execution de- ferred, ib. Stafford, Thomas, takes sanctuary at Colchester, 20; in rebeUion against the King, ibr, takes sanctuary at Cohiham, ib. ; par- doned, ib. Stanley, Thomas Lord, the third husband of the Lady Margaret, 225 ; papal dispensation needed for this marriage, 233 ; deserts the cause of Richard at Bos- worth, ib. ; High Constable at Henry's coronation, ib. ; created Earl of Derby, 13; visited by the King at Latham, 128 Stanley, Sir William, Chamber- lain of North Wales under Richard IIL, 229; places the crown upon the head of Henry at Bosvvorth Field, 8; King's Chamberlain, 113, 272; sides with Warbeck, 112, 113; ac- cused by Sir R. Clifford, 121, 122; causes for Henry's delay in the arrest of, 275; examina- tion, 122; condemnation, 123; execution, 123, 275; his funeral conducted at the King's cost, 275, 276; why did he suffer? 123-125, 276; his wealth, 123; the causes of his death a source of terror to the servants of Henry, 126 Star Chamber, 61, 62, 255-257 Stenbeck, John, a kinsman of Perkin Warbeck, 106 Stile, John, sent by Henry on a commission of enquiry about the widowed Queen of Naples, and afterwards to the Court of Fer- dinand, 199; payments to, 295; pardoned, ib. Stoke, battle of, 25, 36, 37, 243 Stokker, Sir William, Lord Mayor of London, dies from the sweat- ing sickness, 232 Strange, George Lord, joins Henry's army at Bosworth,. 229 ; in the possession of Richard III., ib.; goes to the King's aid against the rebels, 36, 246 ; sometimes alluded to as King's brother, 246 Strangeways, one of Warbeck's keepers in the Tower, 176 Subsidies, 146, 197, 254, 282, 294 Sudeley castle, 281 Suffolk, Charles Brandon Duke of, a favourite of Henry VIH., 215, 298; married to Mary, daughter of Henry VH., 298 Suffolk, Edmund de la Pole, Earl of, in the army drawn up for the invasion of France, 100 ; leader of the forces opposed to the Cornish rebels, 152, 153; pardoned by Heniy after having killed a man in anger, but is compelled publicly to plead his pardon, 185, 186; resents this and flees secretly to the Duchess of Burgundy at Flanders, 186, 291 ; returns and is reconciled to the King, ib. ; second flight, with his brother, into Flanders, 192, 293 ; Sir R. Lovell ap- pointed receiver of his lands, &c.,'293; excommunicated, 194, 294; retires to the Archduke Philip, 195 ; conference between Henry and Philip concerning the Earl, 204, 205 ; his return, 205 ; conveyed to the Tower, ib. ; claims the estates of his father, 291 ; executed by Henry VHL, 297 Suffolk, William de la Pole, Duke of, attainder, 225 Surrey, Thomas Earl of, attainder, 16, 234; forfeiture and restora- tion of his title, 234; sent to quell the rebellion in the North, 66; defeats the rebels, 66', re- mains in the North to collect the subsidy, 67 ; despatched by Henry in readiness to oppose INDEX. 341 an attack by the Scots on the North of England, 151 ; Bp Fox sends for his assistance in the defence of Norham Castle against the King of Scotland, 157; pursues the Scottish King, 158; takes Ayton Castle, ib.; returns to England, ib. Sutton, Dr William, arrested, 274 Swart, Martin, captain of the regiment of Almains sent to Simnel's assistance in Ireland, 32; lands with the rebel forces at Fouldrey, 35 ; bravery at the battle of Stoke, 37; slain there, ib. Sweating sickness, 12, 13, 232 Talbot, Sir Gilbert, property of Humphrey Stafford granted to, 240 Tate, John, Lord Mayor of Lon- don, arms the citizens against the Cornish rebels, 153, 284 Taunton, the Cornish rebels march to, 149; Warbeck at, 166, 167 Taylor, Sir John, goes over to Warbeck, 1 10 Te Deum sung on Bos worth Field, 5; at St Paul's, II, 40, 98, 188, 269 Tenures in capite, 191, 292 Tewkesbury, Lancastrian defeat at, 238 Thomas, Richard, in the army drawn up for the French in- vasion, 100 Thomas, Sir Rice ap, sent with a force to Exeter, 166; Constable, lieutenant, and steward of Breck- nock, 285; chamberlain of South Wales, lb. Thorney monastery. The Lady Margaret a benefactress to, 225 Thracia, Pope Julius urges a war upon, 184 Thwaites, Sir Thomas, treasurer of Calais, 273; sides with the counterfeit Duke of York, 113 ; apprehended, 120; pardoned, ib. Tirrel, Sir James, examined touch- ing the murder of the Princes, 114; his account, 114, 273; arrested, 194, 293; executed, 115, 194, 273 Trade, statute against the mono- polizing of, 147, 148, 282 Treason, exemptions from the penalty of, 13.:?, 134, 279 Trenchard, Sir Thomas, proceeds with forces to Weymouth, being unaware of the cause of the presence of King Philip's navy there, 202, 203, 297 ; invites the King and Queen to his house, 203 Trinity, Bons-hommes of the. The religious order of, 78, 264 Tudor, Edmund, the first husband of Lady Margaret mother of Henry VH., 225 Tunstal, Sir Richard, sent by Henry to the King of France, 50, 250; levies the Northern subsidy, 67 ; annuity to, 259 Turberville, John, mentioned by Warbeck as being in favour with the King, 142, 281 ; con- stable of Corffe Castle, 281 ; coroner and marshal of the King's household, ib. Turk's commissioners for Children of Tribute, 105, 270 Tyler, Sir William, in favour with Henry, 142, 281 ; controller of the King's mines, 281; con- stable of Sudeley Castle, ib. Urswick, Christopher, Master of King's Hall, Cambridge, 249 ; Chaplain to the King and his mother, ib.\ Henry's ambas- sador to the King of France, 47, 50, 250; also to the Duke of Brittany, 48 ; has an audience with the Duke of Orleans, 48, 49; returns to Charles VIIL 342 INDEX. after his interview with the Duke, 49 ; communicates his results to Henry, ib.; sent by Heniy to Maximilian, 99 ; con- veys the Order of the Garter to Alphonso, Duke of Calabria, 104; a commissioner for the re- newal of intercourse between England and Flanders, 146 Usury, acts concerning, 58, 64, 254, 258 Vagabonds, statute regarding, 196, 197, 294 Valois, Felix de, one of the found- ers of the Religious Order of the Bons-Hommes of the Trinity, 264 Vaughan, Hugh, runs courses with Sir James Parker at Shene, 99 Venetians urged by Pope Julius to sail with a navy to Constanti- nople, 184 Venice, Duke of, see tinder Barba- dico, Augustino Verunsel, Lord, a commissioner for the renewal of intercourse between England and Flanders, 146 "Wales, Prince of, the creation of the title, 223 Walsingham, pilgrimage of Henry VH. to, 34, 245; he sends his banner to our Lady of, 38 Warbeck, Perkin, introductory notice concerning, 104- 1 06; Ed- ward IV. said to have been his godfather, 105; early years, 106; instructed by the Duchess of Burgundy how to personate Richard Duke of York, 107, 108; ordered by her to proceed to Ireland, 108; thence to Por- tugal, ib. ; receives promise of help from the French King, 109; the tale in his confession that the Irish insisted first that he was the Duke of Clarence, then the bastard son of Richard III. and finally Richard Duke of York, ib.\ sends letters to the Earls of Desmond and Kil- dare soliciting their support, ib.\ proceeds to France, no; arrives at Cork, ib. ; his reception there, no; leaves the French court, no; repairs to the Duchess of Burgundy at Flanders, ib.\ de- sertions from, 126; resolves to make an exploit upon England, 128; selects the coast of Kent, 129; his followers who had landed there defeated, 130; re- turns to Flanders, 135 ; sails again into Ireland, 135; ad- vised to seek the aid of the King of Scotland, ib.', arrival and reception there, 136; state- ment to the King and his nobles, 136—139; the King consents to his marriage with lady Catharine Gordon, 140; enters Northum- berland with the Scottish King and large forces, ib. ; his pro- clamation there, 140— 144 ; the Northumbrians uninfluenced by it, 145; the King refuses to give him up to Henry, 160; begins however to suspect Warbeck, 161 ; leaves the King of Scots and sails into Ireland, 161; some of the Cornish rebels offer to join him, 163; takes counsel concerning this, ib. ; hastens into Cornwall, ib,\ proclama- tion at Bodmin, 164 ; styles himself Richard IV., 164, 285; besieges Exeter, 164; marches on Taunton, 166 ; flight to Bewdly in the New Forest, 167; takes sanctuary there, ib.\ promise of life and pardon on condition of surrender accepted, 169; brought to the King's Court, ib.\ conveyed through London on horseback, 1 70 ; his confession printed and dispersed INDEX. (43 ib.', publicly read by him, 178; the confession as given in Hall's Chronicle, 287-289; escapes to the coast, 175; takes refuge in the Priory of Shene, ib.\ set in tlie stocks, 176; conveyed to the Tower, ib. ; conspiracy with his keepers to effect his escape, 176, 177; arraigned at West- minster, 178; condemnation and execution, ib. "Wardships, 191, 292 Warham, William, Abp of Canter- bury, one of Henry's ambas- sadors to the Archduke Philip, 117, ■274; a commissioner for the renewal of intercourse be- tween England and Flanders, 146 Warwick, Earl of, called the King maker, 226; dispute with Richard HI. and the Duke of Clarence concerning the disposal of the wealth of, ib.\ conspires with Warbeck and the keepers of the Tower to murder the lieutenant and to escape, 176, 177; per- sonated by Ralph Wilford, 177; arraigned before the Earl of Oxford, 178; executed, 178, 289 Water, John, of Cork, attainder, 271 Ways and Means, committee of, Weights and Measures, 93 Wells, the Cornish rebels march to, 149 Wells, John Lord, one of the com- missioners for the renewal of intercourse between England and Flanders, 146; married to Cecilia, daughter of Edward IV., 280; made steward of the Duke of Buckingham's lands, 282 West Indies, 172 Westminster, Henry VII. spends Christmas at, 103, 121; War- beck in the stocks there, 176 Weymouth, The vessel containing the King and Queen of Castile takes refuge at, 202 White Rose, the name continued to Warbeck's wife, 168 Whitsand Bay, Warbeck at, 163 Wilford, Ralph, personates the Earl of Warwick, 177; arrives in Kent, ib.\ apprehension and execution, 177, 289 William the Conqueror, thegrounds on which he claimed his right to the English throne, 9, 229 Willoughby, Sir Robert, sent to the Castle of Sheriff- Hutton concerning the custody of the Lady Elizabeth, and Edward Plantagenet, 9, 10; created Lord Willoughby of Brook, 18, 229; commands the forces sent to the aid of the Duke of Brittany, 6r, 229 ; goes with an army to Exeter, 166; further notice of the family, 302 Winchester, the Cornish rebels at, 150 Windham, Sir John, arrest and execution of, 194, 293 Windsor, burial of Elizabeth widow of Edward IV. at, 29 Wines, regulations concerning the importation of foreign, 72, 262 Wood vile, Lord, refused leave to go to the assistance of the Duke of Britain, 50; he proceeds never- theless, ib.\ slain at the battle of St Alban, 60 Wolsey, Cardinal, 207, 298 Wool, laws concerning, 73, 262, 289 Worsley, William, Dean of St Paul's, sympathises with War- beck, 120; pardoned, 120, 275 Wyat, Henry, mentioned by War- beck as being in favour with the King, 142 ; bailiff of the Lordship of Methwold, 281 Wydville, Anthony, created Lord Scales, 244 344 INDEX. of Wydville, Edward, Governor the Isle of Wight, 250 Wydeville, Sir Richard, created Lord Rivers, 227, 244 Wykeham, William of, his motto, 262 Yeomen of the Guard, 14, 233 York, Cecile, Duchess of, mother of Edward IV,, death and burial, 132, 279 York, house of, affection of the Irish to the, 26 York and Lancaster, union of the families of, 6, 223 York, the rebels at, 35 Ypres seized by Lord Ravenstein, 75 Zealand, robbery of vessels on their way to, 94 Zouch, Lord, attainder, 17, 234; forfeiture and restoi"ation of the title, 234 CAMBRIDGE: rKINTED BY J. & C. F. CLAY, AT THE UNIVERSITY PRESS. THE PITT PRESS SERIES. COMPLETE LIST, GREEK. • Author Worh. Editor Price Aeschylus Prometheus Vinctus Rackham 2/6 Aristophanes Aves — Plutus — Ranae Green 3/6 each > J Vespae Graves 3/6 5> Nubes )i 3/6 Demosthenes Olynthiacs Glover 2/6 Euripides Heracleidae Beck & Headla m .V6 )) Hercules Furens Gray & Hutchinson 2/- >) Hippolytus H ad ley ^/- t« Iphigeneia in Aulis Headlam 2/6 >i Medea 55 2/6 >» Hecuba Hadley 2/6 »> Alcestis 11 2/6 > 1 Orestes Wedd 4/6 Herodotus Boole V Shuckburgh 3/- , , „ VI, VIII, IX )> 4/- each >> ,, VIII I — 90, IX I — 89 »> 2/6 each Homer Odyssey ix, x Edwards 2/6 each »i XXI )» 2/. >» XI Nairn 2/- >» Iliad VI, XXII, XXIII, xxiv Edwards 2/- each »> Iliad IX, X Lawson 2/6 Lucian Somnium, Charon, etc. Heitland 3/6 >> Menippus and Timon Mackie 3/^ Plato Apologia Socratis Adam 35 »» Crito II 2/6 >> Euthyphro »i 2/6 »t Protagoras J. & A. M. Adam 4/6 Plutarch Demosthenes Holden 4/6 II Gracchi It 6/- » Nicias i> 5/- ♦1 Sulla •* 6/- >» Timoleon II 6/. Sophocles Oedipus Tyrannus Jebb +(■ Thucydides Book III Spratt 5/- »> Book VII Holden «/■ THE PITT PRESS SERIES. GREEK continued. Author IVork Editor Price Xenophon Agesilaus Hailstone 2/6 Anabasis Vol. I. Text Pretor 3/- Vol. II. Notes I) 4/6 I, n u 4/- I, III, IV, V 1» 2/- each „ II, VI, VII II 2/6 each Hellenics i, ii Edwards 3/6 Cyropaedeia i, ii (2 vols.) Holden 6/. Ill, IV, V II 5l- „ VI, VII, VIII 11 5/- • Memorabilia li Edwards 3/6 LATIN. Bede Eccl. History ill, iv Lumby 7/6 Caesar De Bello Galileo Com. I, III, VI, VIII Peskett 1/6 earh >> „ ii-iii, and VII II 2/- each 91 ,1 i-ni II 3/- >> „ iv-v II >/6 >» De Bello Civili. Com. i Peskett 3/- J» „ ,, Com. Ill M 2/6 Cicero Actio Prima in C. Verrem Cowie 1/6 >i De Amicitia Reid 3/6 >> De Senectute II 36 9 9 De Officiis. Bk in Holden 2/- »J Pro Lege Manilla Nicol 1/6 » Dlv. In Q. Caec. et Actio Prima in C. Verrem Heltland & Cowie 7,f- J» Ep. ad Atticum. Lib II Pretor 3/- II Philippica Secunda Peskett 3/6 II Pro Archia Poeta Reid 2/- II „ Balbo >> 1/6 >l „ Mllone II 2/6 II ,, M arena Heitland 3/- II „ Plancio Holden 4/6 11 ,, Sulla Reid 3/6 l> Somnium Scipionis Pear man 2/- Cornelius Nepos Four parts Shuck burgh 1/6 each Horace Epistles. Bk i 11 2/6 11 Odes and Epodes Gow 5/- II Odes. Books l, ill 1 1 2/- each i» „ Books II, IV ; Epodes ,, 1 (6 each 11 Satires. Book i 1 J W- Juve nal Satires Duff 5/- THE PITT PRESS SERIES. LATIN continued. Author ^<7r/fe Editor Price Livy Book I Edwards In the Press 1) » " Conway 2/6 » „ IV, VI, IX, XXVII Stephenson 2/6 each »» » V Whibley 2/6 ft „ XXI, XXII Dimsdale 2/6 each Lucan Pharsalia. Bk I Heitland & Haskins i/6 ^ 5 De Bello Civili. Bk Vil Postgate 2/. Lucretius Book V Duff W- Ovid Fasti. Book vi Sidgwick 1/6 15 Metamorphoses, Bk i Dowdall 1/6 H „ Bk VIII Summers 1/6 Plautus Epidicus Gray 3/- ? ) Stichus Fennell 2/6 >» Trinummus Gray 3/6 Quintus Curtius Alexander in India Heitland & Raven 3/6 Sallust Catiline Summers 2/- Tacitus Agricola and Germania Stephenson 3/- ,, Hist. Bk I Davies 2/6 Terence Hautontimorumenos Gray 3/- Vergil Aeneid i to xii Sidgwick 1/6 each M Bucolics M 1 16 >> Georgics i, ii, and ill, iv II 2/- each >> Complete Works, Vol. i, Text „ 3/6 tl „ „ Vol. II, Notes „ 4/6 FRENCH. The Volumes marked * contain Vocabulary. About Le Roi des Montagnes Ropes i\- Biart Quand j'etais petit, Pts i, li Boielle 2/- each Boileau L'Art Poetique Nichol Smith 2/6 Corneille La Suite du Menteur Masson 2/- ,, Polyeucte Braunholtz 2/- De Bonnecliose Lazare Hoche Colbeck 2- II Bertrand du Guesclin Leathes ^Z- * 11 ,, Part II >i 1/6 Delavlgne Louis XI Eve 2/- >i Les Enfants d'Edouard »> ^z- De Lamaxtlne Jeanne d'Arc Clapin & Ropes 1/6 De Vigny La Canne de Jonc Eve 1/6 *Duma« La Fortune de D'Artagnan Ropes i\- *Knault Le Chien du Capitaine 3 Verrall 2/- THE PITT PRESS SERIES. FRENCH continued. Author Work Editor Price Erckmann-Chatrlan La Guerre Clapin 3/- a Waterloo Ropes 3/- }} Le Blocus )> 3/- >) Madame Therese ,, {In the Press) 3/- »> Histoire d'un Consent " " 3/- Gautier Voyage en Italie (Selections) Payen Payne In the Press Guizot Discours sur I'Histoire de la Revolution d'Angleterre Eve 2/6 Mme de Stael Le Directoire Masson & Prothero 2/- >> Dix Annees d'Exil >t ^z- *TVra,lot Remi et ses Amis Verrall 2/- * Remi en Angleterre »» 2/- Merimee Coloniba Ropes % Michelet Louis XI & Charles the Bold » » Moliere Le Bourgeois Gentilhomme Clapin ./6 >> L'ficole des Femmes Saintshury 2/6 »> Las Precieuses ridicules Braunhultz il- >> , , {A bridged Edition) >> i/- >> Le Misanthrope »> 2/6 »i L'Avare > J 2/6 Perrault Fairy Tales Rippmann 1/6 Piron La Metromanie Masson 2/- Ponsard Charlotte Corday Ropes -'/- Racine Les Plaideurs Braunholtz 2/- > ' , , {A bridged Edition ) >> l/- ,, Athalie Eve ^1- Saintine Picciola Ropes ^1- Scribe & Legouve Bataille de Dames Bull 2/- Scribe Le Verre d'Eau Colbeck 2/- S^daine Le Philosophe sans le savoir Bull -./- Souvestre Un Philosophe sous les Toils Eve 2/- 1 J Le Serf & Le Chevrier de Lori laine Ropes 2/- * 5> Le Serf >» 1/6 Spencer A Primer of French Verse 3/- Thierry Lettres sur I'histoire de France (xiii — xxiv) Masson & Prothero 2/6 n Recits des Temps Merovin- giens, I — III Masson & Ropes 3/- Villemain Lascaris ou les Grecs du xv^ Siecle Masson 2/- Voltaire Xavier de Maistre Histoire du Siecle de Louis XIV, in three parts Masson & Prothero 2/6 eac/i La Jeune Siberienne. Lej Leprcux de la Cited'Aostej Masson 1/6 4 THE PITT PRESS SERIES. Author *An(iersen Benedix Freytag Goetlie * Grimm Gutzkow Hacklauder Hauff GERMAN. The Volumes marked * contain Vocabulary. Work Eight Fairy Tales Dr Wespe Der Staat Friediichs des Grosser! Die Journalisten Knabenjahre (1749 — 1761) Hermann und Dorothea Iphigenie Selected Tales Zopf und Schwert Der geheime Agent Das Bild des Kaisers Das Wirthshaus im Spessarl ,, Die Karavane * ,, Der Sheik von Alessandria Immermann Der Oberhof Klee Die deutschen Heldensagen Kohlrausch Dasjahri8i3 Lessing Minna von Barnhelm Leasing & Gellert Selected Fables Mendelssohn Selected Letters Raumer RieU Schiller Sytael Uhland Der erste Kreuzzug Culturgeschichtliche Novellen Die Ganerben & Die Ge- rechtigkeit Gottes Wilhelm Tell , , {A bridged Edition ) Geschichte des dreissigjah- rigen Kriegs Book ill. Maria Stuart Wallenstein I. (Lager and Piccolomini) Wallenstein IL (Tod) Prinz Eugen von Savoyen Ernst, Herzogvon Schwaben Ballads on German History German Dactylic Poetry Editor Price Rippmann 2/6 Breul 3/- Wagner W- Eve 2/6 Wagner & Cartniell 2/- >> »» 3/6 Breul 3/6 Rippmann 3/- Wolstenholme 3/6 E. L. Milner Bai ry 3/- Breul 3/- Schlottmann & Cartmell 3/ Schlottmann 3/- Rippmann 2/6 Wagner 3/- Wolstenholme 3/- >) ^Z- Wolstenholme 3/- Breul 3/- Sime 3/- Wagner i\' Wolslenholme 3/- M 3/- Breul 2/6 >j 1/6 >» 3/- >» 3/6 >> 3/6 >> 3/^ Quiggin 2/6 Wolstenholme 3/6 Wagner 2/- » 3/- THE PITT PRESS SERIES. ENGLISH Lumby 3/- West 3/6 & 5/- G. C. M. Smith 1/6 Lumby 4/- Masterman i\- West 3/- & 4/- Tovey 4/- & 5/- Author Work Editor Bacon History of the Reign of King Henry VII ,, Essays ,, New Atlantis Cowley Essays Defoe Robinson Crusoe, Part I Earle Microcosmograpiiy Gray Poems Lamb Tales from Shakespeare Macaulay Lord Clive „ Warren Hastings ,, William Pitt and Earl of Chatht ,, Lays and other Poems Mayor A Sketch of Ancient Philoso- phy from Thales to Cicero More History of King Richard III ,, Utopia Milton Arcades and Comus „ Ode on the Nativity, L'AlIe-j gro, II Penseroso & Lycidasj „ Samson Agonistes ,, Sonnets ,, Paradise Lost, six parts Essay on Criticism Marmion Lady of the Lake Lay of the last Minstrel Legend of Montrose Old Mortahty A Midsummer-Night's Dream Twelfth Night „ Julius Caesar ,, ,, The Tempest ,, ,, King Lear ,, „ Merchant of Venice ,, ,, King Richard II ,, „ As You Like It ,, ,, King Henry V ,, „ Macbeth ,, Shakespeare & Fletcher Two Noble Kinsmen Skeat Sidney An Apologie for Poetrie Shuckburgh Wallace Outlines of the Philosophy of Aristotle Price Pope Scott Shakespeare Flather 1/6 Innes 1/6 »> 1/6 ' ,y 2/6 Flather 1/6 3/6 Lumby 3/6 )> 3/6 Verity 3/- »» 2/6 »i 2/6 »» 1/6 ^ /- each West ^Z- Masterman 2/6 >> 2/6 Flather 2/- Simpson 2/6 Nicklin 2/6 Verity 1/6 ^ t) BD- 8 9. THE PITT PRESS SERIES. ENGLISH continued. Author Work West Elements of English Grammar ,, English Grammar for Beginners ,, Key to English Grammars Carlos Short History of British India Mill Elementary Commercial Geography Baxtholomew Atlas of Commercial Geography Editor Price 2/6 I/- 3/6 net '/- 1/6 3/- Robinson Church Catechism Explained Jackson The Prayer Book Explained. Part I 2/- 2/6 MATHEMATICS. Ball Elementary Algebra Euclid Books I — VI, XI, xii Taylor „ Books I — VI „ „ Books I — IV „ Also separately „ Books I, & II; III, & TV; V, & VI ; xi, & xii 1 16 each ,, Solutions to Exercises in Taylor's Euclid W. W. Taylor And separately „ Solutions to Bks I — iv „ ,, Solutions to Books vi. xi „ Hol)SOn& Jesaop Elementary Plane Trigonometry Loney Smith, C. Hale, 6. Elements of Statics and Dynamics Part I. Elements of Statics „ II. Elements of Dynamics Elements of Hydrostatics Solutions of Examples, Statics and Dynamics Mechanics and Hydrostatics Arithmetic for Schools, with or without answers Part I. Chapters I — viii. Elementary, with or without answers Part II. Chapters ix — xx, with or without answers Key to Smith's Arithmetic London: C. J. CLAY and SONS, CAMBRIDGE UNIVERSITY PRESS WAREHOUSE, AVE MARIA LANE. GLASGOW : 50, Wellington Street, 4/6 5/- 4/- 3/- 10/6 61- 61- 4/6 7/6 4/6 3/6 4/6 7/6 4/6 3/6 2/. V- 7/6 ^f)t ffiamfirilrge Bifcle for Sicl^oolg aiTtr (Colleges General Editors : J. J. S. PEROWNE, D.D., Foemebly Bishop op Wokcester A. F. KIRKPATEICK, D.D., Regius Pkofkssor of Hkhrew! Extra Fcap. 8vo. cloth, with Maps when required. New Volumes. I and II Chronicles. Rev. W. E. Barnes, D.D. 2s. Qd. net. Psalms. Books II and III. Prof. Kirkpatrick, D.D. 2s.net. Fsalms. Books IV and V. Prof. Kirkpatrick, D.D. 2s. net. Song of Songs. Rev. Andrew Harpkr, B.D. \In the Press. Book of Isaiali. Chaps. I. — XXXI2L. Rev. J. Skinner, D.D. 2s. 6^. net. Chaps. XL. — IiXVI. Rev. J. Skinner, D.D. 2s. Qd. net. Book of Daniel. Rev. S. R. Driver, D.D. 2.9. Qd. net. Bpistles to Timothy & Titus. Rev. A. E. Humphreys, M.A. 2s. net. €\)t Smaller Cambridge asible for ^i^rboofe* Now Ready. With Maps. Price Is. each volume. Book of Joshua. Rev. J. S. Black, LL.D. Book of Judges. Rev. J. S. Black, LL.D. First Book of Samuel. Prof. Kirkpatrick, D.D. Second Book of Samuel. Prof. Kirkpatrick, D.D. First Book of Kings. Prof. Lumby, D. D. Second Book of Kings. Prof. Lumby, D.D. Ezra & Nehemiah. The Rt. Rev. H. E. Ryle, D.D. Gospel according to St BSatthew. Rev. A. Carr, M.A. Gospel according to St Mark. Rev. G. F. Maclear, D.D. Gospel according to St Luke. Very Rev. F. W. Farrar, D.D. Gospel according to St John. Rev. A. Plummee, D.D. Acts of the Apostles. Prof. Lumby, D.D. c- Cfte Cambnbge €rttk Ce^tameiit .^ for Sdjools anb Colleges. General Editors: J. J. S. PEROWNE, D.D., J. ARMITAGE ROBINSON, D.D. New Voltwies. BpistletotheFhilippians. Rt.Rev.H.C. G.Moule,D.D. 2s. 6d. Epistle of St James. Rev. A. Carr, M.A. 2s. 6^. Pastoral Epistles. Rev. J. H. Bernard, D.D. 3s. 6d. Book of Revelation. Rev. W. H. Simcox, M.A. 5s. Hontion: C. J. CLAY and SONS, CAMBRIDGE WAREHOUSE, AVE MARIA LANE. ©lasfiobj: 50, WELLINGTON STREET. ILcip^irt: F. A. BRUCKHAUS. 0.m Jgorh: THE MACMILLAN COMPANY. CAMBRIDGE: i-KlMTKU uy J. & C. F. CLAY, AT THii BKl VARSITY P-lJiSS. 8 «v c " " " «